Selected quad for the lemma: conscience_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
conscience_n light_n natural_a sun_n 1,020 5 9.7836 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A30905 Truth triumphant through the spiritual warfare, Christian labours, and writings of that able and faithful servant of Jesus Christ, Robert Barclay, who deceased at his own house at Urie in the kingdom of Scotland, the 3 day of the 8 month 1690. Barclay, Robert, 1648-1690. 1692 (1692) Wing B740; ESTC R25857 1,185,716 995

There are 28 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

through_o he_o be_v communicate_v unto_o they_o they_o be_v prone_a and_o incline_v unto_o evil_a though_o thousand_o of_o thousand_o be_v ignorant_a of_o adam_n fall_n neither_o ever_o know_v of_o the_o eat_v of_o the_o forbid_v fruit_n so_o also_o many_o may_v come_v to_o feel_v the_o influence_n of_o this_o holy_a and_o divine_a seed_n and_o light_n and_o be_v turn_v from_o evil_a to_o good_a by_o it_o though_o they_o know_v nothing_o of_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n through_o who_o obedience_n and_o suffering_n it_o be_v purchase_v unto_o they_o and_o as_o we_o affirm_v it_o be_v absolute_o needful_a mystery_n the_o history_n be_v profitable_a with_o the_o mystery_n that_o those_o do_v believe_v the_o history_n of_o christ_n outward_a appearance_n who_o it_o please_v god_n to_o bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o so_o we_o do_v free_o confess_v that_o even_o that_o outward_a knowledge_n be_v very_o comfortable_a to_o such_o as_o be_v subject_a to_o and_o lead_v by_o the_o inward_a seed_n and_o light_n for_o not_o only_o do_v the_o sense_n of_o christ_n love_n and_o suffering_n tend_v to_o humble_v they_o but_o they_o be_v thereby_o also_o strengthen_v in_o their_o faith_n and_o encourage_v to_o follow_v that_o excellent_a pattern_n which_o he_o have_v leave_v we_o who_o suffer_v for_o we_o as_o say_v the_o apostle_n peter_n 1_o pet._n 2.21_o leave_v we_o a_o example_n that_o we_o shall_v follow_v his_o step_n and_o many_o time_n we_o be_v great_o edify_v and_o refresh_v with_o the_o gracious_a say_n which_o proceed_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n the_o history_n than_o be_v profitable_a and_o comfortable_a with_o the_o mystery_n and_o never_o without_o it_o but_o the_o mystery_n be_v and_o may_v be_v profitable_a without_o the_o explicit_a and_o outward_a knowledge_n of_o the_o history_n quest._n 5_o but_o five_o this_o bring_v we_o to_o another_o question_n to_o wit_n whether_o christ_n be_v in_o all_o man_n or_o no_o which_o sometime_o have_v be_v ask_v we_o and_o argument_n bring_v against_o it_o because_o indeed_o it_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o some_o of_o our_o write_n man_n how_o christ_n be_v in_o all_o man_n that_o christ_n be_v in_o all_o man_n and_o we_o be_v often_o hear_v in_o our_o public_a meeting_n and_o declaration_n to_o desire_v every_o man_n to_o come_v to_o know_v and_o be_v acquaint_v with_o christ_n in_o they_o tell_v they_o that_o christ_n be_v in_o they_o it_o be_v fit_a therefore_o for_o remove_v of_o all_o mistake_v to_o say_v something_o in_o this_o place_n concern_v this_o matter_n we_o have_v say_v before_o how_o that_o a_o divine_a spiritual_a and_o supernatural_a light_n be_v in_o all_o man_n how_o that_o that_o divine_a supernatural_a light_n or_o seed_n be_v vehiculum_fw-la dei_fw-la how_o that_o god_n and_o christ_n dwell_v in_o it_o and_o be_v never_o separate_v from_o it_o also_o how_o that_o as_o it_o be_v receive_v and_o close_v with_o in_o the_o heart_n christ_n come_v to_o be_v form_v and_o bring_v forth_o but_o we_o be_v far_o from_o ever_o have_v say_v that_o christ_n be_v thus_o form_v in_o all_o man_n or_o in_o the_o wicked_a for_o that_o be_v a_o great_a attainment_n which_o the_o apostle_n travel_v that_o it_o may_v be_v bring_v forth_o in_o the_o galatian_n neither_o be_v christ_n in_o all_o man_n by_o way_n of_o union_n or_o indeed_o to_o speak_v strict_o by_o way_n of_o inhabitation_n because_o this_o inhabitation_n as_o it_o be_v general_o take_v import_v union_n or_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o saint_n as_o it_o be_v write_v i_o will_v dwell_v in_o they_o and_o walk_v in_o they_o 2_o cor._n 6.16_o but_o in_o regard_n christ_n be_v in_o all_o man_n as_o in_o a_o seed_n yea_o and_o that_o he_o never_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v separate_a from_o that_o holy_a pure_a seed_n and_o light_n which_o be_v in_o all_o man_n therefore_o may_v it_o be_v say_v in_o a_o large_a sense_n that_o he_o be_v in_o all_o even_o as_o we_o observe_v before_o the_o scripture_n say_v amos_n 2.13_o god_n be_v press_v down_o as_o a_o cart_n under_o sheaf_n and_o christ_n crucify_a in_o the_o ungodly_a though_o to_o speak_v proper_o and_o strict_o neither_o can_v god_n be_v press_v down_o nor_o christ_n as_o god_n be_v crucify_a in_o this_o respect_n then_o as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o seed_n which_o be_v in_o all_o man_n we_o have_v say_v christ_n be_v in_o all_o man_n and_o have_v preach_v and_o direct_v all_o man_n to_o christ_n in_o they_o who_o lie_v crucify_a in_o they_o by_o their_o sin_n and_o iniquity_n iniquity_n christ_n crucify_a in_o man_n by_o iniquity_n that_o they_o may_v look_v upon_o he_o who_o they_o have_v pierce_v and_o repent_v whereby_o he_o that_o now_o lie_v as_o it_o be_v slay_v and_o bury_v in_o they_o may_v come_v to_o be_v raise_v and_o have_v dominion_n in_o their_o heart_n over_o all_o and_o thus_o also_o the_o apostle_n paul_n preach_v to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o galatian_n 1_o cor._n 2.2_o christ_n crucify_v in_o they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o the_o greek_a have_v it_o this_o jesus_n christ_n be_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n desire_v to_o know_v in_o they_o and_o make_v know_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o may_v come_v to_o be_v sensible_a how_o they_o have_v thus_o be_v crucify_a christ_n that_o so_o they_o may_v repent_v and_o be_v save_v and_o forasmuch_o as_o christ_n be_v call_v that_o light_n that_o inlighten_v every_o man_n the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n therefore_o the_o light_n be_v take_v for_o christ_n who_o true_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o light_n and_o have_v his_o habitation_n in_o it_o for_o ever_o thus_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n be_v sometime_o call_v christ_n i._n e._n that_o in_o which_o christ_n be_v and_o from_o which_o ●e_n be_v never_o separate_v §_o xvi_o six_o it_o will_v manifest_o appear_v by_o what_o be_v avove-said_a that_o we_o understand_v not_o this_o divine_a principle_n to_o be_v any_o part_n of_o man_n nature_n nor_o yet_o to_o be_v any_o relic_n of_o any_o good_a which_o adam_n lose_v by_o his_o fall_n in_o that_o we_o make_v it_o a_o distinct_a separate_a thing_n from_o man_n soul_n and_o all_o the_o faculty_n of_o it_o yet_o such_o be_v the_o malice_n of_o our_o adversary_n that_o they_o cease_v not_o sometime_o to_o calumniate_v we_o as_o if_o we_o preach_v up_o a_o natural_a light_n or_o the_o light_n of_o man_n natural_a conscience_n next_o there_o be_v that_o lean_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o socinus_n and_o pelagius_n who_o persuade_v themselves_o through_o mistake_n and_o out_o of_o no_o ill_a design_n to_o injure_v we_o as_o if_o this_o which_o we_o preach_v up_o be_v some_o natural_a power_n and_o faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o that_o we_o only_o differ_v in_o the_o word_v of_o it_o and_o not_o in_o the_o thing_n itself_o whereas_o there_o can_v be_v no_o great_a difference_n than_o be_v betwixt_o we_o in_o this_o matter_n for_o we_o certain_o know_v that_o this_o light_n of_o which_o we_o speak_v be_v not_o only_o distinct_a reason_n the_o faculty_n of_o man_n reason_n but_o of_o a_o different_a nature_n from_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o its_o faculty_n indeed_o that_o man_n as_o he_o be_v a_o rational_a creature_n have_v reason_n as_o a_o natural_a faculty_n of_o his_o soul_n by_o which_o he_o can_v discern_v thing_n that_o be_v rational_a we_o deny_v not_o for_o this_o be_v a_o property_n natural_a and_o essential_a to_o he_o by_o which_o he_o can_v know_v and_o learn_v many_o art_n and_o science_n beyond_o what_o any_o other_o animal_n can_v do_v by_o the_o mere_a animal_n principle_n neither_o do_v we_o deny_v but_o by_o this_o rational_a principle_n man_n may_v apprehend_v in_o his_o brain_n and_o in_o the_o notion_n a_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o spiritual_a thing_n yet_o that_o not_o be_v the_o right_a organ_n as_o in_o the_o second_o proposition_n have_v more_o at_o length_n be_v signify_v it_o can_v profit_v he_o towards_o salvation_n but_o rather_o hinder_v and_o indeed_o the_o great_a cause_n of_o the_o apostasy_n have_v be_v that_o man_n have_v seek_v to_o fathom_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n in_o and_o by_o this_o natural_a and_o rational_a principle_n and_o to_o build_v up_o a_o religion_n in_o it_o god_n antichrist_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n neglect_v and_o overlook_v this_o principle_n and_o seed_n of_o god_n in_o the_o heart_n so_o that_o herein_o in_o the_o most_o universal_a and_o catholic_n sense_n have_v antichrist_n in_o every_o man_n set_v up_o himself_o and_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n as_o god_n and_o above_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v call_v god_n for_o man_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o say_v the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 3.16_o when_o the_o
rational_a principle_n set_v itself_o up_o there_o above_o the_o seed_n of_o god_n to_o reign_v and_o rule_v as_o a_o prince_n in_o spiritual_a thing_n while_o the_o holy_a seed_n be_v wound_v and_o bruise_v there_o be_v antichrist_n in_o every_o man_n or_o somewhat_o exalt_v above_o and_o against_o christ._n neverthless_a we_o do_v not_o hereby_o affirm_v as_o if_o man_n have_v receive_v his_o reason_n to_o no_o purpose_n or_o to_o be_v of_o no_o service_n unto_o he_o in_o no_o wise_a we_o look_v upon_o reason_n as_o fit_a to_o order_n and_o rule_n man_n in_o thing_n natural_a distinguish_v the_o divine_a light_n and_o natural_a reason_n distinguish_v for_o as_o god_n give_v two_o great_a light_n to_o rule_v the_o outward_a world_n the_o sun_n and_o moon_n the_o great_a light_n to_o rule_v the_o day_n and_o the_o lesser_a light_n to_o rule_v the_o night_n so_o have_v he_o give_v man_n the_o light_n of_o his_o son_n a_o spiritual_a divine_a light_n to_o rule_v he_o in_o the_o thing_n spiritual_a and_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n to_o rule_v he_o in_o thing_n natural_a and_o even_o as_o the_o moon_n borrow_v her_o light_n from_o the_o sun_n so_o ought_v man_n if_o they_o will_v be_v right_o and_o comfortable_o order_v in_o natural_a thing_n to_o have_v their_o reason_n enlighten_v by_o this_o divine_a and_o pure_a light_n which_o enlighten_v reason_n in_o those_o that_o obey_v and_o follow_v this_o true_a light_n we_o confess_v may_v be_v useful_a to_o man_n even_o in_o spiritual_a thing_n as_o it_o be_v still_o subservient_fw-fr and_o subject_a to_o the_o other_o even_o as_o the_o animal_n life_n in_o man_n regulate_v and_o order_v by_o his_o reason_n help_v he_o in_o go_v about_o thing_n that_o be_v rational_a conscience_n the_o light_n distinguish_v from_o man_n natural_a conscience_n we_o do_v further_a right_o distinguish_v this_o from_o man_n natural_a conscience_n for_o conscience_n be_v that_o in_o man_n which_o arise_v from_o the_o natural_a faculty_n of_o man_n soul_n may_v be_v defile_v and_o corrupt_v it_o be_v say_v express_o of_o the_o impure_a tit._n 1.15_o that_o even_o their_o mind_n and_o conscience_n be_v defile_v but_o this_o light_n can_v never_o be_v corrupt_v nor_o defile_v neither_o do_v it_o ever_o consent_v to_o evil_a or_o wickedness_n in_o any_o for_o it_o be_v say_v express_o that_o it_o make_v all_o thing_n manifest_v that_o be_v reprovable_a eph._n 5.13_o and_o so_o be_v a_o faithful_a witness_n for_o god_n against_o every_o vnrighteousness_n in_o man_n define_v conscience_n define_v now_o conscience_n to_o define_v it_o true_o come_v from_o conscire_fw-la and_o be_v that_o knowledge_n which_o arise_v in_o man_n heart_n from_o what_o agree_v contradict_v or_o be_v contrary_n to_o any_o thing_n believe_v by_o he_o whereby_o he_o become_v conscious_a to_o himself_o that_o he_o transgress_v by_o do_v that_o which_o he_o be_v persuade_v he_o ought_v not_o to_o do_v so_o that_o the_o mind_n be_v once_o blind_v or_o defile_v with_o a_o wrong_a belief_n there_o arise_v a_o conscience_n from_o that_o belief_n which_o trouble_v he_o when_o he_o go_v against_o it_o turk_n example_n of_o a_o turk_n as_o for_o example_n a_o turk_n who_o have_v possess_v himself_o with_o a_o false_a belief_n that_o it_o be_v unlawful_a for_o he_o to_o drink_v wine_n if_o he_o do_v it_o his_o conscience_n smite_v he_o for_o it_o but_o though_o he_o keep_v many_o concubine_n his_o conscience_n trouble_v he_o not_o because_o that_o his_o judgement_n be_v already_o defile_v with_o a_o false_a opinion_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o do_v the_o one_o and_o unlawful_a to_o do_v the_o other_o whereas_o if_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n in_o he_o be_v mind_v it_o will_v reprove_v he_o not_o only_o for_o commit_v fornication_n but_o also_o as_o he_o become_v obedient_a thereunto_o inform_v he_o that_o mahomet_n be_v a_o impostor_n as_o well_o as_o socrates_n be_v inform_v by_o it_o in_o his_o day_n of_o the_o falsity_n of_o the_o heathen_n go_n papist_n example_n of_o ●_o papist_n so_o if_o a_o papist_n eat_n flesh_n in_o lent_n or_o be_v not_o diligent_a enough_o in_o adoration_n of_o saint_n and_o image_n or_o if_o he_o shall_v contemn_v image_n his_o conscience_n will_v smite_v he_o for_o it_o because_o his_o judgement_n be_v already_o blind_v with_o a_o false_a belief_n concern_v these_o thing_n whereas_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n never_o consent_v to_o any_o of_o those_o abomination_n thus_o than_o man_n natural_a conscience_n be_v sufficient_o distinguish_v from_o it_o for_o conscience_n follow_v the_o judgement_n do_v not_o inform_v it_o but_o this_o light_n as_o it_o be_v receive_v remove_v the_o blindness_n of_o the_o judgement_n open_v the_o understanding_n and_o rectify_v both_o the_o judgement_n and_o conscience_n so_o we_o confess_v also_o that_o conscience_n be_v a_o excellent_a thing_n where_o it_o be_v right_o inform_v and_o enlighten_v wherefore_o some_o of_o we_o have_v fit_o compare_v it_o to_o a_o lantern_n candle_n the_o natural_a conscience_n compare_v to_o a_o lantern_n and_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n the_o candle_n and_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o candle_n a_o lantern_n be_v useful_a when_o a_o clear_a candle_n burn_v and_o shine_v in_o it_o but_o otherwise_o of_o no_o use_n to_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n then_o in_o the_o conscience_n and_o not_o to_o man_n be_v natural_a conscience_n it_o be_v that_o we_o continual_o commend_v man_n this_o not_o that_o be_v it_o which_o we_o preach_v up_o and_o direct_a people_n to_o as_o to_o a_o most_o certain_a guide_n unto_o life_n eternal_a last_o this_o light_n seed_n etc._n etc._n appear_v to_o be_v no_o power_n or_o natural_a faculty_n of_o man_n mind_n because_o a_o man_n that_o be_v in_o his_o health_n can_v when_o he_o please_v stir_v up_o move_v and_o exercise_v the_o faculty_n of_o his_o soul_n he_o be_v absolute_a master_n of_o they_o and_o except_o there_o be_v some_o natural_a cause_n or_o impediment_n in_o the_o way_n he_o can_v use_v they_o at_o his_o pleasure_n but_o this_o light_n and_o seed_n of_o god_n in_o man_n he_o can_v move_v and_o stir_v up_o when_o he_o please_v but_o it_o move_v blow_n and_o strive_v with_o man_n as_o the_o lord_n see_v meet_v for_o though_o there_o be_v a_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o every_o man_n during_o the_o day_n of_o his_o visitation_n yet_o can_v a_o man_n at_o any_o time_n when_o he_o please_v or_o have_v some_o sense_n of_o his_o misery_n grace_n the_o wait_v upon_o the_o move_n of_o the_o light_n and_o grace_n stir_v up_o that_o light_n and_o grace_n so_o as_o to_o procure_v to_o himself_o tenderness_n of_o heart_n but_o he_o must_v wait_v for_o it_o which_o come_v upon_o all_o at_o certain_a time_n and_o season_n wherein_o it_o work_v powerful_o upon_o the_o soul_n mighty_o tender_v it_o and_o break_v it_o at_o which_o time_n if_o man_n resist_v it_o not_o but_o close_o with_o it_o he_o come_v to_o know_v salvation_n by_o it_o even_o as_o the_o lake_n of_o bethesda_n do_v not_o cure_v all_o those_o that_o wash_v in_o it_o but_o such_o only_a as_o wash_v first_o after_o the_o angel_n have_v move_v upon_o the_o water_n so_o god_n move_v in_o love_n to_o mankind_n in_o his_o seed_n in_o his_o heart_n at_o some_o singular_a time_n set_v his_o sin_n in_o order_n before_o he_o and_o serious_o invite_v he_o to_o repentance_n offer_v to_o he_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o salvation_n which_o if_o man_n accept_v of_o he_o may_v be_v save_v now_o there_o be_v no_o man_n alive_a and_o i_o be_o confident_a there_o shall_v be_v none_o to_o who_o this_o paper_n shall_v come_v who_o if_o they_o will_v deal_v faithful_o and_o honest_o with_o their_o own_o heart_n will_v not_o be_v force_v to_o acknowledge_v but_o they_o have_v be_v sensible_a of_o this_o in_o some_o measure_n less_o or_o more_o which_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o man_n can_v bring_v upon_o himself_o with_o all_o his_o pain_n and_o industry_n this_o then_o o_o man_n and_o woman_n be_v the_o day_n of_o god_n gracious_a visitation_n to_o thy_o soul_n which_o thou_o shall_v be_v happy_a for_o ever_o if_o thou_o resist_v not_o this_o be_v the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o as_o christ_n say_v be_v like_a the_o lightning_n 3.8_o matt._n 24.27_o john_n 3.8_o that_o shine_v from_o the_o east_n unto_o the_o west_n and_o the_o wind_n or_o spirit_n which_o blow_v upon_o the_o heart_n and_o no_o man_n know_v whither_o it_o go_v nor_o whence_o it_o come_v §_o xvii_o and_o last_o this_o lead_v i_o to_o speak_v concern_v the_o manner_n of_o quest._n 7_o this_o seed_n or_o light_n be_v operation_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n which_o will_v show_v yet_o more_o manifest_o how_o we_o differ_v vast_o from_o all_o
in_o a_o certain_a respect_n to_o lay_v aside_o the_o outward_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o after_o the_o flesh_n in_o these_o word_n 2_o cor._n 5.16_o 17._o wherefore_o henceforth_o know_v we_o no_o man_n after_o the_o flesh_n yea_o though_o we_o have_v know_v christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n yet_o now_o henceforth_o know_v we_o he_o no_o more_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n be_v in_o christ_n he_o be_v a_o new_a creature_n old_a thing_n be_v pass_v away_o behold_v all_o thing_n be_v become_v new_a whence_o it_o manifest_o appear_v that_o he_o make_v the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n but_o as_o it_o be_v the_o rudiment_n which_o young_a child_n learn_v which_o after_o they_o be_v become_v better_a scholar_n be_v of_o less_o use_n to_o they_o because_o they_o have_v and_o possess_v the_o very_a substance_n of_o those_o first_o precept_n in_o their_o mind_n as_o all_o comparison_n halt_v in_o some_o part_n so_o shall_v i_o not_o affirm_v this_o to_o hold_v in_o every_o respect_n yet_o so_o far_o will_v this_o hold_v that_o as_o those_o that_o go_v no_o further_o than_o the_o rudiment_n be_v never_o to_o be_v account_v learned_a and_o as_o they_o grow_v beyond_o these_o thing_n so_o they_o have_v less_o use_n of_o they_o even_o so_o such_o as_o go_v no_o further_o than_o the_o outward_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n shall_v never_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o such_o as_o come_v to_o know_v this_o new_a birth_n to_o be_v in_o christ_n indeed_o to_o be_v a_o new_a creature_n to_o have_v old_a thing_n pass_v away_o and_o all_o thing_n become_v new_a may_v safe_o say_v with_o the_o apostle_n though_o we_o have_v know_v christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n yet_o now_o henceforth_o know_v we_o he_o no_o more_o now_o heart_n but_o by_o the_o work_n of_o light_n and_o grace_n in_o the_o heart_n this_o new_a creature_n proceed_v from_o the_o work_n of_o this_o light_n and_o grace_n in_o the_o heart_n it_o be_v that_o word_n which_o we_o speak_v of_o that_o be_v sharp_a and_o pierce_a that_o implant_v word_n able_a to_o save_v the_o soul_n by_o which_o this_o birth_n be_v beget_v and_o therefore_o christ_n have_v purchase_v unto_o we_o this_o holy_a seed_n that_o thereby_o this_o birth_n may_v be_v bring_v forth_o in_o we_o which_o be_v therefore_o also_o call_v the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o spirit_n give_v to_o every_o one_o to_o profit_v withal_o for_o it_o be_v write_v that_o by_o one_o spirit_n we_o be_v all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n and_o the_o apostle_n peter_n also_o ascribe_v this_o birth_n to_o this_o seed_n and_o word_n of_o god_n which_o we_o have_v so_o much_o declare_v of_o say_v 1_o pet._n 1.23_o be_v bear_v again_o not_o of_o corruptible_a seed_n but_o of_o incorruptible_a by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o live_v and_o abide_v for_o ever_o though_o then_o this_o seed_n be_v small_a in_o its_o appearance_n so_o that_o christ_n compare_v it_o to_o a_o grain_n of_o mustardseed_n which_o be_v the_o least_o of_o all_o seed_n matth._n 13.31_o 32._o and_o that_o it_o be_v hide_v in_o the_o earthy_a part_n of_o man_n heart_n yet_o therein_o be_v life_n and_o salvation_n towards_o the_o son_n of_o man_n wrap_v up_o which_o come_v to_o be_v reveal_v as_o they_o give_v way_n to_o it_o man_n the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v in_o the_o seed_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n and_o in_o this_o seed_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n as_o in_o capacity_n to_o be_v produce_v or_o rather_o exhibit_v according_a as_o it_o receive_v depth_n be_v nourish_v and_o not_o choke_v hence_o christ_n say_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v in_o the_o very_a pharisee_n luke_n 17.20_o 21._o who_o do_v oppose_v and_o resist_v he_o and_o be_v just_o account_v as_o serpent_n and_o a_o generation_n of_o viper_n now_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n can_v be_v no_o other_o way_n in_o they_o than_o in_o a_o seed_n even_o as_o the_o thirty-fold_n and_o the_o hundred-fold_n be_v wrap_v up_o in_o a_o small_a seed_n lie_v in_o a_o barren_a ground_n which_o spring_v not_o forth_o because_o it_o want_v nourishment_n and_o as_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o a_o great_a tree_n be_v wrap_v up_o potential_o in_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o tree_n and_o so_o be_v bring_v forth_o in_o due_a season_n and_o as_o the_o capacity_n of_o a_o man_n or_o a_o woman_n be_v not_o only_o in_o a_o child_n but_o even_o in_o the_o very_a embryo_n even_o so_o the_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n yea_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o christ_n within_o who_o be_v the_o hope_n of_o glory_n and_o become_v wisdom_n righteousness_n sanctification_n and_o redemption_n be_v in_o every_o man_n and_o woman_n heart_n in_o that_o little_a incorruptible_a seed_n ready_a to_o be_v bring_v forth_o as_o it_o be_v cherish_v and_o receive_v in_o the_o love_n of_o it_o for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o man_n worse_o than_o those_o rebellious_a and_o unbelieving_a pharisee_n be_v and_o yet_o this_o kingdom_n be_v thus_o within_o they_o and_o they_o be_v direct_v to_o look_v for_o it_o there_o so_o it_o be_v neither_o lo_o here_o nor_o lo_o there_o in_o this_o or_o the_o other_o observation_n that_o this_o be_v know_v but_o as_o this_o seed_n of_o god_n in_o the_o heart_n be_v mind_v and_o entertain_v and_o certain_o hence_o it_o be_v even_o because_o this_o light_n seed_n and_o grace_n that_o appear_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v so_o little_o regard_v and_o so_o much_o overlook_v that_o so_o few_o know_v christ_n bring_v forth_o in_o they_o save_v calvinist_n papist_n arminian_o and_o socinian_o error_n deny_v the_o light_n to_o be_v save_v the_o one_o sort_n to_o wit_n the_o calvinist_n they_o look_v upon_o grace_n as_o a_o irresistible_a power_n and_o therefore_o neglect_v and_o despise_v this_o eternal_a seed_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o their_o heart_n as_o a_o low_a insufficient_a useless_a thing_n as_o to_o their_o salvation_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n the_o papist_n arminian_o and_o socinian_o they_o go_v about_o to_o set_v up_o their_o natural_a power_n and_o will_n with_o one_o consent_n deny_v that_o this_o little_a seed_n this_o small_a appearance_n of_o the_o light_n be_v that_o supernatural_a save_v grace_n of_o god_n give_v to_o every_o man_n to_o save_v he_o and_o so_o upon_o they_o be_v verify_v that_o say_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n this_o be_v the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o world_n that_o light_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n but_o man_n love_v darkness_n rather_o than_o light_n the_o reason_n be_v add_v because_o their_o deed_n be_v evil._n all_o confess_v they_o feel_v this_o but_o they_o will_v not_o have_v it_o to_o be_v of_o that_o virtue_n some_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v reason_n some_o a_o natural_a conscience_n some_o certain_a relic_n of_o god_n image_n that_o remain_v in_o adam_n so_o christ_n as_o he_o meet_v with_o opposition_n from_o all_o kind_n of_o professor_n in_o his_o outward_a appearance_n so_o do_v he_o now_o in_o his_o inward_a it_o be_v the_o meanness_n of_o his_o outward_a man_n flesh_n the_o meanness_n of_o christ_n appearance_n in_o the_o flesh_n that_o make_v many_o despise_v he_o say_v be_v not_o this_o the_o son_n of_o the_o carpenter_n be_v not_o his_o brethren_n and_o sister_n among_o we_o be_v not_o this_o a_o galilean_a and_o come_v there_o ever_o a_o prophet_n out_o of_o galilea_n and_o such_o like_a reason_n for_o they_o expect_v a_o outward_a deliverer_n who_o as_o a_o prince_n shall_v deliver_v they_o with_o great_a ease_n from_o their_o outward_a enemy_n and_o not_o such_o a_o messiah_n as_o shall_v be_v crucify_a shameful_o and_o as_o it_o be_v lead_v they_o into_o many_o sorrow_n trouble_n and_o affliction_n so_o the_o meanness_n of_o this_o appearance_n make_v the_o crafty_a jesuit_n the_o pretend_a rational_a socinian_o and_o the_o learned_a arminian_o overlook_v it_o desire_v rather_o something_o that_o they_o may_v exercise_v their_o subtlety_n reason_n and_o learning_n about_o and_o use_v the_o liberty_n of_o their_o own_o wi_n and_o the_o secure_a calvinist_n they_o will_v have_v a_o christ_n to_o save_o they_o without_o any_o trouble_n to_o destroy_v all_o their_o enemy_n for_o they_o without_o they_o and_o nothing_o or_o little_a within_o while_o they_o mean_v while_n be_v at_o ease_n to_o live_v in_o their_o sin_n secure_a whence_o when_o all_o be_v well_o examine_v the_o cause_n be_v plain_a it_o be_v because_o their_o deed_n be_v evil_a that_o with_o one_o consent_n they_o reject_v this_o light_n light_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o light_n for_o it_o check_v the_o wise_a of_o they_o all_o and_o the_o learnede_a of_o they_o all_o in_o secret_a it_o reprove_v they_o neither_o can_v all_o
page_n need_v no_o answer_n but_o that_o of_o michael_n to_o the_o devil_n who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o such_o stuff_n the_o lord_n rebuke_v thou_o this_o method_n of_o answer_v be_v no_o less_o unreasonable_a than_o his_o rail_a for_o it_o be_v either_o by_o suppose_v thing_n not_o prove_v by_o he_o by_o conclude_a thing_n not_o follow_v from_o my_o assertion_n or_o by_o manifest_a perversion_n all_o improve_v by_o the_o height_n of_o abuse_n to_o render_v the_o thing_n that_o displease_v he_o absurd_a and_o ridiculous_a of_o these_o i_o shall_v take_v notice_n in_o order_n first_n he_o suppose_v nothing_o to_o be_v the_o gospel_n preach_v j._n b._n suppose_v nothing_o to_o be_v the_o gospel_n save_o the_o outward_a preach_v save_o the_o outward_a preach_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o gospel_n where_o there_o be_v not_o a_o outward_a administration_n of_o it_o and_o this_o he_o never_o offer_v to_o prove_v what_o he_o say_v to_o contradict_v my_o assert_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v where_o the_o outward_a may_v not_o be_v will_v after_o be_v examine_v upon_o this_o his_o mere_a supposition_n he_o account_v i_o absurd_a pag._n 226._o and_o upon_o this_o supposition_n he_o urge_v all_o man_n not_o have_v grace_n as_o not_o have_v the_o gospel_n p._n 235_o 236_o 240._o that_o to_o preach_v the_o light_n within_o be_v to_o despise_v the_o gospel_n p._n 244._o that_o according_a to_o i_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n another_o of_o his_o supposition_n be_v that_o because_o the_o light_n within_o be_v common_a to_o all_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v nothing_o but_o nature_n and_o upon_o this_o false_a and_o unproved_a ground_n he_o rail_v and_o enlarge_v p._n 229._o where_o he_o call_v it_o the_o pelagian_a grace_n of_o god_n that_o be_v man_n freewill_n doubt_v whether_o i_o will_v say_v so_o much_o as_o do_v pelagius_n which_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n neither_o prove_v his_o inference_n which_o be_v false_a as_o the_o scripture_n bring_v by_o i_o in_o my_o apology_n to_o prove_v there_o be_v a_o save_v spiritual_a grace_n give_v to_o all_o do_v evince_n what_o he_o say_v in_o answer_n to_o any_o of_o they_o as_o it_o occur_v will_v hereafter_o be_v consider_v and_o yet_o upon_o this_o false_a inference_n he_o conclude_v p._n 233._o the_o height_n of_o the_o quaker_n divinity_n be_v but_o what_o a_o natural_a conscience_n can_v teach_v a_o man-eater_n and_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n p._n 234._o and_o then_o batter_v against_o it_o p._n 237._o saying_n christ_n in_o the_o saint_n the_o hope_n of_o glory_n be_v not_o bring_v about_o by_o nature_n which_o i_o never_o say_v and_o therefore_o he_o but_o fight_v with_o his_o own_o shadow_n as_o he_o do_v upon_o the_o like_a occasion_n pag._n 231_o 232-236-238_a 241_o 256._o where_o he_o say_v that_o man_n be_v not_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o their_o natural_a state_n and_o the_o scripture_n say_v not_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n by_o nature_n which_o produce_v christ_n in_o the_o soul_n etc._n etc._n which_o thing_n be_v never_o assert_v by_o i_o more_o of_o he_o mistake_v of_o this_o kind_n may_v be_v see_v pag._n 257_o 262_o 265._o where_o he_o conclude_v the_o quaker_n religion_n and_o gospel_n to_o be_v nothing_o but_o what_o mere_a nature_n teach_v but_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o in_o that_o almost_o one_o and_o only_a argument_n which_o he_o bring_v to_o make_v this_o inferrence_n good_a albeit_o much_o of_o his_o work_n and_o exclamation_n depend_v upon_o it_o he_o involve_v himself_o in_o a_o notable_a contradiction_n for_o p._n 234._o n._n 7._o to_o prove_v there_o be_v no_o universal_a light_n or_o seed_n that_o bear_v witness_n against_o all_o evil_a deed_n he_o ask_v messagetians_n j._n b._n deny_v the_o light_n to_o bear_v witness_n against_o evil_n in_o the_o cilician_o and_o messagetians_n how_o come_v it_o that_o this_o light_n and_o seed_n do_v not_o bear_v witness_n against_o the_o cilician_o who_o live_v upon_o theft_n and_o against_o the_o messagetians_n who_o use_v their_o wife_n in_o common_a and_o against_o such_o as_o use_v to_o kill_v man_n and_o eat_v they_o now_o these_o can_v make_v nothing_o for_o his_o purpose_n unless_o for_o this_o reason_n that_o because_o these_o people_n common_o and_o avowed_o do_v these_o thing_n therefore_o they_o have_v no_o light_n that_o reprove_v they_o for_o they_o otherwise_o their_o do_v of_o they_o will_v not_o import_n the_o light_n do_v not_o bear_v witness_n against_o their_o so_o do_v more_o than_o man_n under_o the_o presbyterian_a ministry_n commit_v adultery_n and_o murder_n will_v import_v there_o be_v no_o witness_n bear_v against_o these_o sin_n by_o the_o presbyterian_a preacher_n but_o he_o have_v overthrow_v this_o his_o reason_n himself_o by_o affirm_v p._n 232._o and_o 235._o man._n j._n b._n overthrow_v his_o former_a reason_n assert_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n in_o every_o man._n that_o there_o be_v a_o natural_a conscience_n or_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n leave_v in_o every_o man_n as_o god_n deputy_n inform_v of_o some_o good_a and_o testify_v against_o some_o evil_n of_o which_o elsewhere_o he_o particularize_v murder_n and_o adultery_n and_o yet_o here_o he_o say_v it_o be_v observe_v there_o be_v hardly_o one_o point_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n which_o some_o nation_n have_v not_o violate_v not_o only_o by_o their_o custom_n but_o by_o their_o very_a law_n if_o then_o their_o thus_o violate_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n do_v not_o prove_v they_o have_v not_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n or_o be_v not_o reprove_v by_o it_o which_o he_o himself_o have_v confess_v all_o have_v then_o neither_o will_v their_o do_v those_o thing_n prove_v they_o have_v no_o divine_a light_n nor_o seed_n or_o be_v not_o thereby_o reprove_v for_o if_o it_o prove_v they_o have_v not_o that_o it_o will_v as_o much_o prove_v they_o have_v no_o natural_a conscience_n no_o law_n of_o nature_n which_o yet_o he_o confess_v be_v in_o every_o man._n ¶_o 4._o in_o this_o chapter_n also_o he_o will_v insinuate_v and_o infer_v to_o render_v that_o which_o he_o write_v against_o odious_a that_o the_o assert_v of_o a_o universal_a gospel_n by_o which_o salvation_n may_v be_v possible_a to_o such_o as_o want_v outward_a preach_v render_v outward_a preach_v needless_a but_o this_o cavil_v use_v often_o before_o by_o he_o be_v already_o answer_v in_o the_o 3_o and_o 4_o section_n and_o therefore_o what_o he_o repeat_v of_o this_o again_o here_o p._n 229.236.245_o needs_o no_o further_a answer_n and_o whereas_o he_o ask_v upon_o this_o occasion_n p._n 244._o necessary_a the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v necessary_a how_o can_v the_o believe_v of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v necessary_a as_o i_o say_v it_o be_v to_o such_o as_o hear_v it_o if_o they_o may_v be_v save_v without_o it_o because_o god_n command_v every_o one_o to_o believe_v these_o truth_n to_o who_o he_o bring_v the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o albeit_o not_o they_o to_o who_o he_o have_v render_v it_o impossible_a have_v he_o forget_v their_o own_o distinction_n of_o some_o thing_n be_v necessary_a necessitate_v praecepti_fw-la that_o be_v not_o so_o necessitate_v medii_fw-la neither_o do_v i_o intend_v by_o this_o belief_n which_o the_o propose_v of_o the_o outward_a knowledge_n require_v a_o belief_n mere_o historical_a medii_fw-la necessitas_fw-la praecepti_fw-la &_o medii_fw-la as_o he_o malicious_o will_v insinuate_v i_o shall_v now_o take_v notice_n of_o his_o gross_a perversion_n and_o calumny_n which_o as_o he_o advance_v i_o observe_v grow_v thick_a and_o be_v in_o this_o chapter_n very_o numerous_a as_o first_o from_o my_o say_n that_o we_o understand_v by_o the_o light_n or_o seed_n a_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a principle_n in_o which_o god_n as_o he_o be_v the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o spirit_n dwell_v from_o this_o he_o infer_v p._n 231._o it_o may_v be_v he_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v a_o trinity_n etc._n etc._n but_o if_o there_o be_v any_o ground_n for_o such_o a_o inference_n from_o these_o word_n of_o i_o i_o leave_v it_o to_o all_o rational_a man_n to_o judge_n pag._n 255._o because_o i_o say_v it_o be_v christ_n flesh_n and_o blood_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n he_o ask_v if_o christ_n have_v no_o other_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o then_o as_o if_o i_o have_v answer_v he_o have_v not_o he_o conclude_v we_o denier_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n ask_v whether_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n and_o all_o the_o history_n of_o his_o life_n be_v but_o dream_n and_o lie_n which_o malicious_a insinuation_n and_o perversion_n be_v return_v upon_o he_o as_o false_a and_o groundless_a and_o whereas_o he_o
and_o lead_v they_o out_o of_o error_n and_o blindness_n do_v charge_v they_o and_o do_v worse_o for_o very_o that_o will_v undo_v you_o in_o the_o end_n o_o that_o god_n will_v rend_v the_o heaven_n and_o come_v down_o in_o shower_n of_o love_n and_o quench_v the_o flame_n that_o everywhere_o devour_v his_o creation_n that_o it_o will_v please_v he_o to_o still_o the_o furious_a wind_n and_o calm_v the_o rage_a sea_n and_o remove_v that_o enmity_n which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o and_o bring_v the_o nation_n under_o his_o own_o heavenly_a government_n where_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o learn_v war_n against_o one_o another_o any_o more_o that_o they_o that_o have_v err_v in_o spirit_n isa._n 2.4_o isa._n 29_o 29._o matt._n 5.43_o 47._o ch._n 18.21_o 22._o rom._n 12.18_o may_v come_v to_o understanding_n and_o those_o that_o have_v murmur_v may_v learn_v doctrine_n even_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o love_n meekness_n mercy_n forbearance_n a_o doctrine_n of_o self-denial_n humility_n and_o holiness_n a_o doctrine_n that_o reconcile_v we_o to_o god_n and_o one_o to_o another_o and_o no_o man_n can_v have_v the_o benefit_n of_o the_o first_o that_o hate_v his_o brother_n and_o less_o that_o kill_v he_o for_o the_o love_n of_o this_o world_n o_o it_o be_v a_o cry_v sin_n with_o god_n a_o strong_a judgement_n upon_o we_o and_o a_o sure_a token_n both_o of_o more_o and_o near_a calamity_n that_o we_o be_v so_o hard-hearted_a and_o unsensible_a of_o it_o nay_o it_o look_v as_o if_o we_o be_v not_o to_o be_v move_v unless_o god_n himself_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o air_n and_o send_v fire_n down_o to_o consume_v all_o before_o our_o eye_n and_o ourselves_o in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o tragedy_n be_v not_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n do_v we_o think_v reveal_v sufficient_o against_o we_o in_o the_o faction_n strife_n war_n rom._n 1.18_o gal._n 5.19_o 23._o blood_n and_o poverty_n that_o we_o see_v almost_o all_o over_o europe_n this_o day_n god_n almighty_n make_v people_n sensible_a and_o weary_a of_o it_o and_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o their_o sin_n sin_n against_o light_n against_o conscience_n and_o knowledge_n their_o unfaithfulness_n to_o god_n and_o man_n their_o scandalous_a immorality_n and_o most_o inordinate_a love_n of_o the_o world_n the_o ground_n of_o all_o contention_n and_o mischief_n that_o so_o the_o peace_n of_o god_n which_o pass_v worldly_a man_n understanding_n may_v fill_v all_o our_o heart_n through_o repentance_n and_o conversion_n amen_n i_o have_v be_v the_o long_o in_o my_o note_n upon_o this_o occasion_n than_o i_o expect_v but_o our_o present_a condition_n in_o europe_n draw_v it_o from_o i_o that_o need_v a_o olive-branch_n the_o doctrine_n of_o peace_n as_o much_o as_o ever_o our_o author_n next_o treatise_n be_v publish_v 1679._o be_v a_o vindication_n of_o his_o notable_a apology_n for_o the_o christian_a divinity_n profess_v by_o the_o people_n call_v quaker_n in_o reply_n to_o the_o exception_n make_v against_o it_o by_o one_o john_n brown_n in_o his_o book_n call_v quakerism_n the_o pathway_n to_o paganism_n in_o which_o vindication_n the_o reader_n will_v find_v the_o truth_n sift_v from_o all_o the_o dirt_n and_o rubbish_n with_o which_o her_o malicious_a or_o ignorant_a adversary_n have_v endeavour_v to_o sully_v her_o beauty_n and_o disfigure_v and_o bury_v she_o out_o of_o the_o sight_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o people_n the_o defence_n be_v like_o the_o apology_n perform_v with_o much_o labour_n and_o exactness_n and_o so_o full_o and_o plain_o that_o it_o leave_v one_o will_v think_v no_o room_n for_o objection_n with_o the_o serious_a and_o moderate_a inquirer_n i_o do_v just_o esteem_v his_o apology_n and_o this_o vindication_n in_o the_o front_n of_o his_o polemical_a work_n though_o i_o can_v but_o everywhere_o prefer_v those_o labour_n in_o he_o and_o other_o that_o have_v least_o to_o do_v with_o controversy_n and_o who_o main_a and_o immediate_a scope_n be_v the_o engage_v of_o the_o soul_n into_o the_o love_n of_o holiness_n the_o end_n of_o true_a religion_n for_o it_o lead_v into_o the_o bless_a communion_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o give_v the_o possession_n of_o those_o comfort_n and_o refreshment_n that_o no_o tongue_n can_v express_v nor_o soul_n by_o any_o other_o mean_v enjoy_v for_o without_o holiness_n it_o be_v determine_v no_o man_n shall_v ever_o see_v the_o lord_n that_o be_v with_o peace_n heb._n 12.14_o yet_o controversy_n handle_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o open_n of_o his_o light_n and_o spirit_n that_o be_v ever_o present_a and_o sufficient_a to_o the_o help_n of_o his_o people_n in_o all_o their_o service_n have_v also_o its_o edification_n especial_o where_o a_o earnest_a and_o tender_a desire_n to_o inform_v the_o mistake_v prevail_v above_o private_a interest_n or_o any_o party_n or_o personal_a consideration_n for_o god_n will_v witness_v to_o such_o labour_n and_o follow_v they_o with_o his_o blessing_n with_o which_o i_o beseech_v he_o to_o crown_v our_o belove_a friend_n service_n in_o this_o and_o all_o other_o respect_n that_o tend_v to_o the_o exaltation_n of_o his_o glorious_a truth_n the_o last_o tract_n our_o author_n leave_v we_o and_o which_o be_v the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o volume_n and_o preface_n be_v write_v and_o publish_v 1686._o and_o be_v entitle_v the_o possibility_n and_o necessity_n of_o the_o inward_a and_o immediate_a revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n towards_o the_o foundation_n and_o ground_n of_o true_a faith_n prove_v in_o a_o letter_n write_v in_o latin_a to_o a_o person_n of_o quality_n in_o holland_n and_o now_o also_o put_v into_o english_a the_o person_n to_o who_o it_o be_v write_v be_v a_o learned_a man_n especial_o in_o the_o new_a philosophy_n very_o free_a and_o friendly_a but_o not_o fool_n enough_o to_o resign_v to_o this_o doctrine_n as_o entire_o as_o he_o ought_v yet_o i_o believe_v better_o reconcile_v to_o it_o before_o he_o die_v as_o the_o revelation_n of_o sin_n righteousness_n and_o judgement_n of_o mercy_n and_o consolation_n what_o to_o avoid_v what_o to_o repent_v of_o what_o to_o desire_v what_o to_o do_v and_o where_o to_o wait_v for_o power_n to_o avoid_v and_o do_v as_o we_o be_v thereby_o direct_v be_v the_o revelation_n chief_o insist_v upon_o by_o we_o so_o those_o that_o come_v to_o answer_v the_o love_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o revelation_n viz._n the_o sight_n of_o sin_n shall_v know_v the_o abounding_n of_o it_o from_o day_n to_o day_n and_o from_o the_o evidence_n and_o authority_n of_o their_o own_o experience_n shall_v be_v enable_v nay_o constrain_v to_o pronounce_v this_o testimony_n of_o the_o revelation_n maintain_v by_o the_o people_n call_v quaker_n it_o be_v true_a and_o according_a to_o scripture_n i_o may_v advance_v divers_a argument_n from_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o from_o what_o may_v be_v as_o well_o as_o what_o have_v be_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o revelation_n but_o that_o be_v do_v by_o our_o author_n in_o this_o small_a treatise_n in_o a_o abstract_n and_o proper_a manner_n i_o choose_v rather_o to_o speak_v scriptural_o and_o experimental_o and_o whoever_o be_v lowly_a and_o poor_a enough_o in_o spirit_n to_o try_v the_o truth_n of_o what_o i_o say_v shall_v comprehend_v with_o all_o saint_n the_o height_n and_o depth_n and_o length_n and_o breadth_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n by_o the_o revelation_n of_o that_o true_a light_n and_o spirit_n and_o grace_n i_o have_v testify_v of_o in_o this_o preface_n and_o which_o the_o wise_a of_o the_o man_n of_o this_o world_n can_v at_o best_a have_v but_o a_o shadow_n and_o idea_n of_o remember_v life_n be_v more_o than_o food_n and_o the_o body_n than_o raiment_n so_o be_v bread_n better_o than_o husk_n substance_n than_o shadow_n reality_n than_o imagination_n of_o they_o which_o be_v the_o best_a of_o their_o case_n that_o come_v not_o through_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o discipline_n of_o christ_n cross_n to_o enjoy_v they_o reader_n it_o be_v a_o most_o important_a point_n of_o the_o first_o consideration_n to_o man_n without_o it_o no_o knowledge_n of_o god_n nor_o of_o christ_n that_o reveal_v god_n and_o without_o that_o knowledge_n no_o salvation_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o men._n matt._n 11.27_o joh._n 17.3_o so_o that_o this_o volume_n end_v with_o that_o which_o all_o man_n must_v begin_v with_o if_o they_o will_v ever_o true_o know_v god_n and_o possess_v eternal_a life_n viz._n revelation_n now_o some_o will_v say_v revelation_n why_o we_o have_v it_o have_v we_o not_o the_o scripture_n do_v you_o pretend_v to_o another_o revelation_n no_o
w._n m_n position_n in_o preach_v christ_n and_o gather_v the_o church_n whether_o their_o be_v the_o instrument_n make_v these_o thing_n sinful_a which_o be_v do_v not_o only_o by_o the_o command_n but_o by_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n of_o christ_n in_o they_o and_o see_v thou_o can_v not_o deny_v but_o the_o scripture_n call_v by_o thou_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v bring_v forth_o by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n and_o do_v flow_v as_o water_n from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o give_v they_o forth_o through_o the_o very_a first_o penman_n of_o they_o because_o of_o the_o uncleanness_n which_o thou_o suppose_v to_o have_v be_v in_o they_o if_o thou_o say_v nay_o thou_o contradict_a thy_o former_a instance_n of_o clean_a water_n receive_v a_o tincture_n of_o uncleanness_n from_o the_o unclean_a pipe_n through_o which_o it_o pass_v if_o thou_o say_v yea_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v defile_v and_o corrupt_v by_o the_o penman_n of_o they_o i_o leave_v it_o to_o all_o of_o any_o sound_a judgement_n whether_o you_o or_o we_o be_v most_o esteemer_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o who_o say_v they_o be_v pure_a word_n as_o gold_n without_o any_o tincture_n of_o uncleanness_n or_o corruption_n as_o they_o come_v forth_o from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n through_o the_o penman_n of_o they_o or_o you_o if_o you_o say_v that_o they_o be_v defile_v with_o the_o uncleanness_n of_o the_o man_n through_o which_o they_o be_v give_v forth_o he_o who_o have_v any_o true_a understanding_n let_v he_o judge_v concern_v these_o thing_n page_n 26._o thou_o blame_v it_o as_o a_o vnsuitable_a thing_n for_o a_o quaker_n to_o say_v that_o that_o people_n to_o who_o he_o be_v join_v be_v the_o most_o christ-like_a christian_n this_o day_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o yet_o will_v any_o of_o you_o say_v less_o of_o your_o way_n for_o if_o you_o be_v not_o the_o best_a way_n why_o do_v you_o plead_v so_o much_o for_o it_o why_o do_v you_o preach_v it_o up_o why_o do_v you_o study_v to_o draw_v people_n to_o it_o and_o complain_v of_o those_o who_o have_v leave_v it_o now_o be_v not_o a_o good_a principle_n a_o ready_a way_n to_o lead_v people_n to_o good_a practice_n and_o be_v not_o these_o who_o be_v in_o the_o right_a way_n of_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v not_o christ_n flock_n like_a unto_o he_o can_v it_o therefore_o be_v a_o unsuitable_a thing_n for_o one_o who_o suppose_v himself_o to_o be_v of_o christ_n flock_n to_o say_v the_o flock_n with_o who_o he_o be_v be_v like_a to_o christ_n will_v any_o of_o you_o say_v less_o except_o you_o grant_v yourselves_o not_o to_o be_v of_o christ_n flock_n we_o be_v not_o the_o most-christ-like_a people_n say_v thou_o by_o what_o we_o outward_o appear_v because_o the_o monk_n and_o heremite_n therein_o excel_v we_o nor_o yet_o by_o what_o we_o inward_o feel_v because_o other_o different_a from_o we_o have_v feel_v as_o much_o as_o to_o the_o first_o thou_o have_v show_v thy_o ignorance_n of_o the_o very_a appearance_n of_o christianity_n for_o the_o appearance_n of_o christianity_n be_v not_o in_o flee_v the_o society_n of_o man_n or_o retire_v the_o outward_a man_n make_v vow_n of_o voluntary_a poverty_n for_o any_o one_o that_o have_v the_o least_o knowledge_n in_o true_a mortification_n may_v know_v that_o where_o a_o man_n meat_n and_o provision_n be_v lay_v up_o for_o he_o and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o care_n of_o these_o thing_n lie_v upon_o the_o mind_n but_o a_o full_a liberty_n to_o live_v in_o idleness_n which_o be_v the_o monk_n case_n it_o be_v a_o easy_a thing_n in_o self-will_a to_o take_v on_o a_o demure_a deportment_n or_o to_o wear_v haircloth_n or_o go_v barefoot_a which_o by_o custom_n become_v familiar_a and_o true_o many_o of_o the_o commons_o in_o scotland_n be_v use_v to_o great_a hardship_n than_o all_o that_o and_o yet_o be_v far_o from_o have_v the_o appearance_n of_o christianity_n but_o the_o matter_n be_v for_o people_n to_o be_v conversant_a in_o this_o world_n to_o have_v their_o occasion_n and_o business_n in_o it_o and_o to_o have_v deal_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o it_o and_o yet_o to_o keep_v to_o the_o meek_a lowly_a simple_a appearance_n use_v it_o as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o use_v it_o by_o keep_v out_o of_o its_o spirit_n and_o way_n in_o all_o manner_n of_o conversation_n this_o be_v to_o be_v like_a unto_o christ_n who_o do_v not_o retire_v himself_o unto_o a_o heremit_v lodge_v but_o converse_v among_o publican_n and_o sinner_n now_o let_v your_o flock_n and_o the_o quaker_n be_v compare_v together_o in_o this_o particular_a and_o let_v the_o light_n in_o all_o conscience_n judge_v who_o be_v like_a to_o christ._n second_o to_o evidence_n that_o some_o different_a from_o we_o have_v have_v as_o much_o inward_a feel_n thou_o say_v thou_o can_v tell_v we_o of_o some_o who_o have_v have_v so_o much_o of_o the_o fear_n and_o dread_n of_o god_n upon_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o dare_v not_o adventure_v upon_o sin_n by_o this_o thou_o seem_v to_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v inward_a feeling_n and_o enjoyment_n among_o the_o quaker_n say_v what_o good_a be_v it_o that_o you_o true_o feel_v that_o person_n different_a from_o you_o have_v not_o feel_v and_o how_o do_v this_o consist_v with_o your_o judge_v the_o quaker_n fall_v into_o apostasy_n and_o delusion_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o that_o they_o be_v possess_v with_o the_o devil_n can_v such_o have_v inward_a feeling_n and_o enjoyment_n of_o god_n for_o my_o part_n i_o be_o glad_a to_o hear_v that_o any_o such_o have_v be_v who_o have_v have_v so_o much_o of_o the_o fear_n and_o dread_n of_o god_n upon_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o dare_v not_o adventure_v upon_o sin_n and_o i_o shall_v be_v glad_a and_o so_o i_o know_v will_v any_o of_o the_o quaker_n be_v glad_a to_o meet_v with_o they_o but_o now_o such_o who_o have_v so_o much_o of_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n upon_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o dare_v not_o adventure_v upon_o sin_n will_v they_o not_o love_v to_o be_v perfect_a will_v they_o dispute_v against_o perfection_n and_o conclude_v it_o impossible_a will_v such_o who_o dare_v not_o sin_n for_o a_o world_n sin_n every_o day_n yea_o every_o moment_n as_o you_o say_v you_o do_v if_o they_o dare_v not_o sin_n will_v they_o not_o refrain_v from_o sin_n and_o cease_v from_o it_o and_o will_v they_o make_v use_n of_o that_o poor_a evasion_n which_o thou_o adde_v that_o therefore_o they_o will_v not_o willing_o sin_n for_o a_o world_n as_o long_o as_o the_o dread_n and_o fear_n of_o god_n remain_v and_o stand_v over_o the_o heart_n sin_n be_v shut_v out_o and_o the_o mind_n will_n be_v to_o fear_n god_n and_o not_o to_o sin_v thou_o can_v tell_v we_o of_o other_o thou_o say_v who_o many_o year_n live_v in_o the_o sweet_a sense_n of_o god_n favour_n and_o have_v go_v most_o triumphant_o out_o of_o the_o world_n with_o strong_a persuasion_n of_o their_o eternal_a wellbeing_a but_o will_v such_o have_v plead_v for_o continuance_n in_o sin_n do_v not_o continuance_n in_o sin_n eclipse_n and_o take_v away_o the_o sense_n of_o god_n favour_n and_o further_o will_v such_o have_v deny_v fellowship_n with_o god_n by_o immediate_a revelation_n spirit_n immediate_a teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o you_o do_v will_v they_o have_v deny_v the_o immediate_a teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o you_o do_v do_v not_o some_o now_o live_a remember_v some_o of_o they_o who_o have_v these_o feeling_n and_o do_v bear_v a_o express_a testimony_n to_o the_o immediate_a teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o immediate_a fellowship_n with_o god_n and_o plain_o declare_v that_o no_o preach_v be_v profitable_a but_o that_o which_o come_v immediate_o from_o the_o spirit_n and_o find_v fault_n with_o the_o minister_n that_o they_o preach_v from_o their_o study_n and_o their_o book_n and_o wish_v they_o to_o put_v away_o or_o burn_v their_o book_n for_o that_o they_o be_v a_o hurt_n to_o they_o and_o some_o of_o those_o see_v over_o and_o beyond_o and_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o your_o so_o call_v ordinance_n of_o outward_a bread_n and_o wine_n wine_n bread_n and_o wine_n and_o say_v plain_o it_o be_v but_o a_o shadow_n or_o figure_n and_o that_o those_o who_o witness_v the_o substance_n have_v no_o need_n of_o the_o other_o and_o though_o those_o and_o some_o other_o who_o witness_v such_o inward_a feeling_n and_o enjoyment_n of_o god_n be_v not_o call_v quaker_n nor_o have_v their_o understanding_n so_o clear_o open_v as_o to_o many_o thing_n as_o the_o people_n call_v quaker_n have_v yet_o with_o the_o same_o life_n in_o some_o measure_n they_o have_v be_v acquaint_v which_o be_v the_o quaker_n way_n
express_a word_n of_o scripture_n and_o if_o in_o some_o of_o the_o question_n there_o be_v somewhat_o subsume_v of_o what_o in_o my_o judgement_n be_v the_o plain_a and_o naked_a import_n of_o the_o word_n it_o be_v not_o to_o impose_v my_o sense_n upon_o the_o reader_n but_o to_o make_v way_n for_o the_o next_o question_n for_o the_o dependence_n of_o the_o matter_n be_v sake_n i_o shall_v leave_v it_o to_o the_o reason_n of_o any_o understanding_n and_o judicious_a man_n who_o be_v not_o bias_v by_o self-interest_n that_o great_a enemy_n to_o true_a equity_n and_o who_o in_o the_o least_o measure_n be_v willing_a to_o give_v way_n to_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o conscience_n if_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o pertinent_o and_o apt_o answer_v to_o the_o question_n as_o i_o have_v upon_o serious_a ground_n separate_v from_o most_o of_o the_o confession_n and_o catechism_n heretofore_o publish_v so_o not_o without_o cause_n i_o have_v now_o take_v another_o method_n they_o usual_o place_v their_o confession_n of_o faith_n before_o the_o catechism_n i_o judge_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v otherwise_o in_o regard_n that_o which_o be_v easy_a and_o be_v compose_v for_o child_n or_o such_o as_o be_v weak_a ought_v in_o my_o judgement_n to_o be_v place_v first_o it_o be_v most_o regular_a to_o begin_v with_o thing_n that_o be_v easie_n and_o familiar_a and_o lead_v on_o to_o thing_n that_o be_v more_o hard_a and_o intricate_a beside_o that_o thing_n be_v more_o large_o open_v in_o the_o catechism_n and_o divers_a objection_n answer_v which_o be_v propose_v in_o the_o question_n the_o reader_n have_v pass_v through_o that_o first_o will_v more_o perfect_o understand_v the_o confession_n which_o consist_v main_o in_o positive_a assertion_n not_o long_o after_o i_o have_v receive_v and_o believe_v the_o testimony_n i_o now_o bear_v i_o have_v in_o my_o view_n both_o the_o possibility_n and_o facility_n of_o such_o a_o work_n and_o now_o after_o a_o more_o large_a and_o perfect_a acquaintance_n with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n i_o find_v access_n to_o allow_v some_o time_n to_o set_v about_o it_o and_o have_v also_o be_v help_v to_o accomplish_v the_o same_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o it_o may_v be_v enlarge_v by_o divers_a citation_n which_o be_v here_o omit_v as_o not_o be_v at_o present_a bring_v to_o my_o remembrance_n yet_o i_o find_v cause_n to_o be_v content_v in_o that_o god_n have_v so_o far_o assist_v i_o in_o this_o work_n by_o his_o spirit_n that_o good_a remembrancer_n the_o manifestation_n of_o which_o as_o it_o be_v mind_v will_v help_v such_o as_o serious_o and_o conscientious_o read_v this_o to_o find_v out_o and_o cleave_v to_o the_o truth_n and_o also_o establish_v and_o confirm_v those_o who_o have_v already_o believe_v which_o of_o all_o thing_n be_v most_o earnest_o desire_v and_o daily_o pray_v for_o by_o fromvrie_n the_o place_n of_o my_o be_v in_o my_o native_a country_n of_o scotland_n the_o 11_o of_o the_o 6_o month_n 1673._o robert_n barclay_n a_o servant_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o content_n chap._n 1._o of_o god_n and_o the_o true_a and_o save_a knowledge_n of_o he_o chap._n 2._o of_o the_o rule_n and_o guide_n of_o christian_n and_o of_o the_o scripture_n chap._n 3._o of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n the_o use_n and_o end_v of_o it_o chap._n 4._o of_o the_o new_a birth_n the_o inward_a appearance_n of_o christ_n in_o spirit_n and_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o saint_n with_o he_o chap._n 5._o concern_v the_o light_n wherewith_o jesus_n christ_n have_v enlighten_v every_o man_n the_o universality_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o god_n grace_n to_o all_o the_o world_n make_v manifest_a therein_o chap._n 6._o concern_v faith_n justification_n and_o work_n chap._n 7._o concern_v perfection_n or_o freedom_n from_o sin_n chap._n 8._o concern_v perseverance_n and_o fall_v from_o grace_n chap._n 9_o concern_v the_o church_n and_o ministry_n chap._n 10._o concern_v worship_n chap._n 11._o concern_v baptism_n and_o bread_n and_o wine_n chap._n 12._o concern_v the_o life_n of_o a_o christian_a in_o general_a what_o and_o how_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o this_o world_n chap._n 13._o concern_v magistracy_n chap._n 14._o concern_v the_o resurrection_n chap._n 15._o a_o short_a introduction_n to_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n chap._n 16._o a_o confession_n of_o faith_n contain_v twenty_o three_o article_n article_n 1._o concern_v god_n and_o the_o true_a and_o save_v knowledge_n of_o he_o art_n 2._o concern_v the_o guide_n and_o rule_n of_o christian_n art_n 3._o concern_v the_o scripture_n art_n 4_o concern_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n art_n 5._o concern_v his_o appearance_n in_o the_o flesh._n art_n 6._o concern_v the_o end_n and_o use_v of_o that_o appearance_n art_n 7._o concern_v the_o inward_a manifestation_n of_o christ._n art_n 8._o concern_v the_o new_a birth_n art_n 9_o concern_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o saint_n with_o christ._n art_n 10._o concern_v the_o universal_a love_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o all_o art_n 11._o concern_v the_o light_n that_o enlighten_v every_o man._n art_n 12._o concern_v faith_n and_o justification_n art_n 13._o concern_v good_a work_n art_n 14._o concern_v perfection_n art_n 15._o concern_v perseverance_n and_o fall_v from_o grace_n art_n 16._o concern_v the_o church_n and_o ministry_n art_n 17._o concern_v worship_n art_n 18._o concern_v baptism_n art_n 19_o concern_v eat_v of_o bread_n and_o wine_n wash_v of_o one_o another_o foot_n abstain_v from_o thing_n strangle_v and_o from_o blood_n and_o anoint_v of_o the_o sick_a with_o oil._n art_n 20._o concern_v the_o liberty_n of_o such_o christian_n as_o be_v come_v to_o know_v the_o substance_n as_o to_o the_o use_v or_o not_o use_v of_o these_o rite_n and_o of_o the_o observation_n of_o day_n art_n 21._o concern_v swear_v fight_a and_o persecution_n art_n 22._o concern_v magistracy_n art_n 23._o concern_v the_o resurrection_n chap._n 17._o a_o short_a expostulation_n with_o and_o appeal_v to_o all_o other_o professor_n chap._n 18._o a_o short_a examination_n of_o some_o of_o the_o scripture-proof_n allege_v by_o the_o divine_n at_o westminster_n to_o prove_v divers_a article_n in_o their_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o catechism_n a_o catechism_n etc._n etc._n year_n 1673_o chap._n i._o of_o god_n and_o the_o true_a and_o save_v knowledge_n of_o he_o question_n see_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n unquestioned_a by_o all_o sort_n of_o christian_n that_o the_o hight_n of_o happiness_n consist_v in_o come_v to_o know_v and_o enjoy_v eternal_a life_n what_o be_v it_o in_o the_o sense_n and_o judgement_n of_o christ_n answer_n this_o be_v life_n eternal_a that_o they_o may_v know_v thou_o 17.3_o john_n 17.3_o the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n who_o thou_o have_v send_v q._n how_o do_v god_n reveal_v this_o knowledge_n a._n for_o god_n who_o command_v the_o light_n to_o shine_v out_o of_o darkness_n 4.6_o 2_o cor._n 4.6_o have_v shine_v in_o our_o heart_n to_o give_v the_o light_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o the_o face_n of_o jesus_n christ._n q._n how_o many_o god_n be_v there_o a._n one_o god_n we_o know_v that_o a_o idol_n be_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n 6._o ephes._n 4.9_o 1_o cor._n 8.4_o 6._o and_o that_o there_o be_v none_o other_o god_n but_o one_o but_o to_o we_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n q._n what_o be_v god_n a._n god_n be_v a_o spirit_n 4.24_o john_n 4.24_o q._n among_o all_o the_o bless_a glorious_a and_o divine_a excellency_n of_o god_n which_o be_v ascribe_v and_o give_v to_o he_o in_o the_o scripture_n what_o be_v that_o which_o be_v most_o needful_a for_o we_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o as_o be_v the_o message_n which_o the_o apostle_n record_v in_o special_a manner_n to_o declare_v of_o he_o now_o under_o the_o gospel_n a._n this_o then_o be_v the_o message_n which_o we_o have_v hear_v of_o he_o and_o declare_v unto_o you_o that_o god_n be_v light_a and_o in_o he_o be_v no_o darkness_n at_o all_o 1.5_o 1_o john_n 1.5_o q._n what_o be_v they_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n a._n there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n 5.7_o 1_o john_n 5.7_o the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one._n q._n how_o come_v any_o man_n to_o know_v god_n the_o father_n according_a to_o christ_n word_n a._n all_o thing_n be_v deliver_v to_o i_o of_o my_o father_n and_o no_o man_n know_v who_o the_o son_n be_v but_o the_o father_n and_o who_o the_o father_n be_v 14.6_o luke_n 10.22_o mal._n 11.27_o john_n 14.6_o but_o the_o son_n and_o he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n will_v reveal_v he_o jesus_n say_v unto_o he_o i_o be_o the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o
second_o those_o who_o through_o vnwatchfulness_n the_o secret_a corruption_n of_o their_o own_o heart_n and_o the_o mysterious_a or_o hide_a temptation_n of_o the_o enemy_n have_v fall_v into_o his_o snare_n and_o so_o have_v come_v under_o the_o power_n of_o some_o temptation_n or_o other_o either_o of_o fleshly_a lust_n or_o of_o spiritual_a wickedness_n who_o be_v seasonable_o warn_v by_o those_o that_o keep_v their_o habitation_n and_o faithful_a overseer_n in_o the_o church_n have_v be_v again_o restore_v by_o unfeigned_a repentance_n not_o kick_v against_o the_o prick_n but_o have_v rejoice_v that_o other_o watch_v over_o they_o for_o their_o good_a and_o be_v become_v monument_n of_o god_n mercy_n unto_o this_o day_n opposer_n 3._o self-separating_a troublesome_a opposer_n three_o such_o who_o be_v depart_v from_o their_o first_o love_n and_o ancient_a zeal_n for_o the_o truth_n become_v cold_a and_o lukewarm_a and_o yet_o be_v ashamed_a to_o make_v open_a apostasy_n and_o to_o turn_v back_o again_o so_o as_o to_o deny_v all_o the_o principle_n of_o truth_n they_o have_v have_v already_o such_o evidence_n of_o clearness_n upon_o their_o understanding_n yet_o not_o keep_v low_a in_o their_o own_o habitation_n but_o be_v puff_v up_o and_o give_v way_n to_o the_o restless_a imagination_n of_o their_o exalt_v and_o wander_v mind_n fall_v out_o with_o their_o brethren_n cause_n division_n begin_v to_o find_v fault_n with_o every_o thing_n and_o to_o look_v at_o other_o more_o than_o at_o themselves_o with_o swell_a word_n to_o talk_v of_o and_o preach_v up_o a_o high_a dispensation_n while_o they_o be_v far_o from_o live_v up_o to_o the_o life_n and_o perfection_n of_o this_o present_a like_v unto_o such_o who_o say_v we_o will_v not_o have_v this_o man_n to_o rule_v over_o we_o cry_v out_o of_o formality_n and_o apostasy_n because_o they_o be_v not_o follow_v in_o all_o thing_n and_o if_o they_o be_v reprove_v for_o their_o vnruliness_n according_a to_o the_o good_a order_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n than_o they_o cry_v out_o breach_n of_o liberty_n oppression_n persecution_n we_o will_v have_v none_o of_o your_o order_n and_o government_n we_o be_v teach_v to_o follow_v the_o light_n in_o our_o conscience_n and_o not_o the_o order_n of_o men._n well_o of_o this_o hereafter_o but_o this_o give_v the_o rise_n of_o this_o controversy_n which_o lead_v i_o to_o that_o which_o i_o propose_v in_o the_o second_o place_n section_n iii_o whether_o there_o be_v now_o to_o be_v any_o order_n or_o government_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n in_o answer_n to_o this_o proposition_n i_o meddle_v not_o at_o this_o time_n with_o those_o that_o deny_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o church_n of_o christ_n i_o have_v reserve_v their_o plea_n to_o another_o place_n neither_o need_v i_o to_o be_v at_o much_o pain_n to_o prove_v the_o affirmative_a to_o wit_n that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v government_n and_o order_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n grant_v church-order_n and_o government_n grant_v unto_o the_o generality_n of_o our_o opposer_n both_o papist_n and_o protestant_n who_o ready_o confess_v and_o acknowledge_v it_o and_o have_v heretofore_o blame_v we_o for_o want_v of_o it_o though_o now_o some_o of_o they_o and_o that_o of_o the_o high_a pretender_n be_v become_v so_o unreasonable_a as_o to_o accuse_v we_o for_o the_o use_v of_o it_o improve_n it_o so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v to_o our_o disadvantage_n for_o such_o be_v the_o blindness_n of_o partial_a envy_n that_o whereas_o the_o suppose_a want_n of_o it_o be_v once_o reckon_v heretical_a now_o the_o present_a performance_n of_o it_o be_v count_v criminal_a these_o then_o to_o who_o i_o come_v to_o prove_v this_o thing_n be_v such_o who_o have_v cast_v off_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n in_o themselves_o refuse_v all_o subjection_n or_o government_n deny_v that_o any_o such_o thing_n ought_v to_o be_v as_o disagree_v with_o the_o testimony_n of_o truth_n or_o those_o who_o not_o be_v so_o wilful_a and_o obstinate_a in_o their_o mind_n yet_o be_v fearful_a or_o scrupulous_a in_o the_o matter_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o dangerous_a consequence_n they_o may_v apprehend_v such_o a_o thing_n may_v draw_v after_o it_o for_o the_o clear_n then_o as_o well_o the_o mistake_v of_o the_o one_o as_o answer_v the_o cavil_n of_o the_o other_o i_o judge_v the_o truth_n of_o these_o follow_a assertion_n will_v sufficient_o prove_v the_o matter_n which_o i_o shall_v make_v no_o great_a difficulty_n to_o evidence_n first_o that_o jesus_n christ_n the_o king_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n reason_n i_o do_v appoint_v and_o ordain_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v order_n and_o government_n in_o it_o second_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a christian_n when_o they_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o immediate_o lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v practise_v and_o commend_v it_o three_o that_o the_o same_o occasion_n and_o necessity_n now_o occur_v which_o give_v they_o opportunity_n to_o exercise_v that_o authority_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v the_o same_o power_n now_o as_o ever_o and_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n into_o the_o same_o practice_n use_n the_o abuse_n make_v not_o void_a the_o true_a use_n as_o to_o the_o first_o i_o know_v there_o be_v some_o that_o the_o very_a name_n of_o a_o church_n and_o the_o very_a word_n order_n and_o government_n they_o be_v afraid_a of_o now_o this_o i_o suppose_v have_v proceed_v because_o of_o the_o great_a hypocrisy_n deceit_n and_o oppression_n that_o have_v be_v cloak_v with_o the_o pretence_n of_o these_o thing_n but_o why_o shall_v the_o truth_n be_v neglect_v because_o hypocrite_n have_v pretend_v to_o it_o the_o right_a institution_n of_o these_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v appoint_v and_o ordain_v by_o god_n must_v not_o nor_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v despise_v because_o corrupt_v man_n have_v abuse_v and_o pervert_v they_o i_o know_v not_o any_o thing_n that_o have_v be_v more_o abuse_v and_o pervert_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n than_o the_o name_n of_o a_o christian_a shall_v we_o then_o renounce_v that_o honourable_a title_n because_o so_o many_o thousand_o of_o wicked_a man_n yea_o antichrist_n have_v false_o assume_v it_o to_o themselves_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n have_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n as_o god_n yet_o we_o must_v not_o therefore_o deny_v that_o god_n be_v in_o this_o temple_n if_o the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n have_v assume_v the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v term_v her_o oppression_n and_o violence_n the_o power_n and_o authority_n thereof_o therefore_o must_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o its_o authority_n be_v exercise_v where_o it_o true_o be_v according_a to_o his_o mind_n this_o i_o prefix_v to_o warn_v all_o to_o beware_v of_o stumble_v at_o thing_n which_o be_v innocent_a in_o themselves_o and_o that_o we_o may_v labour_v to_o hold_v the_o steady_a even_a path_n of_o truth_n without_o run_v in_o either_o of_o the_o extreme_n for_o that_o jesus_n christ_n do_v appoint_v order_n and_o government_n to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n thereof_o church-order_n appoint_v by_o christ_n and_o the_o form_n thereof_o be_v very_o clear_a from_o his_o plain_a word_n matth._n 18.15_o 16_o 17_o 18._o ver._n 15._o moreover_o if_o thy_o brother_n shall_v trespass_v against_o thou_o go_v tell_v he_o his_o fault_n between_o thou_o and_o he_o alone_o if_o he_o shall_v hear_v thou_o thou_o have_v gain_v thy_o brother_n ver._n 16._o but_o if_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v thou_o then_o take_v with_o thou_o one_o or_o two_o more_o that_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n every_o word_n may_v be_v establish_v ver._n 17._o 〈…〉_o he_o shall_v neglect_v to_o hear_v they_o tell_v it_o unto_o the_o church_n but_o 〈…〉_o neglect_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v unto_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen●●●_n and_o a_o publican_n ver._n 18._o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o whatsoever_o 〈◊〉_d shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o 〈…〉_o loose_a on_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n from_o which_o scripture_n it_o do_v manifest_o and_o evident_o follow_v first_o that_o jesus_n christ_n intend_v there_o shall_v be_v a_o certain_a order_n and_o method_n in_o his_o church_n in_o the_o procedure_n towards_o such_o as_o transgress_v second_o that_o he_o that_o refuse_v to_o hear_v two_o be_v become_v more_o guilty_a as_o harden_v than_o in_o refuse_v to_o hear_v he_o that_o first_o reprove_v alone_o three_o that_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n or_o whole_a assembly_n he_o do_v thereby_o exclude_v himself_o and_o shut_v out_o himself_o from_o be_v a_o member_n and_o be_v just_o judge_v by_o his_o brethren_n
be_v so_o much_o the_o better_a that_o the_o elder_n and_o great_a number_n do_v agree_v to_o it_o and_o if_o wrong_v their_o affirm_v of_o it_o will_v not_o make_v it_o right_o and_o true_o a_o gather_v where_o the_o elder_n and_o great_a number_n be_v always_o or_o most_o frequent_o wrong_a and_o the_o young_a and_o lesser_a number_n right_o be_v such_o as_o we_o can_v suppose_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v and_o if_o any_o will_v plead_v that_o there_o be_v now_o no_o infallible_a judgement_n to_o be_v expect_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o church_n it_o no_o doubt_n will_v leave_v the_o dissenter_n as_o much_o in_o the_o mist_n and_o at_o as_o great_a a_o loss_n as_o those_o they_o dissent_n from_o both_o be_v no_o better_o than_o blind_a man_n hit_v at_o random_n which_o will_v turn_v christianity_n into_o scepticism_n and_o though_o we_o may_v acknowledge_v that_o this_o uncertainty_n prevail_v in_o the_o generality_n of_o those_o call_v church_n yet_o we_o do_v firm_o believe_v for_o the_o reason_n above_o declare_v and_o many_o more_o that_o may_v be_v give_v that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n have_v a_o more_o solid_a stable_a foundation_n and_o be_v never_o separate_v from_o christ_n her_o head_n walk_v in_o a_o more_o certain_a steady_a and_o unerring_a path._n the_o conclusion_n the_o substance_n then_o of_o what_o be_v assert_v and_o prove_v in_o this_o treatise_n resolve_v in_o these_o follow_a particular_n whole_a a_o summary_n recollection_n of_o the_o whole_a first_n that_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n when_o it_o consist_v of_o a_o visible_a people_n for_o i_o speak_v not_o here_o of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o dark_a night_n of_o apostasy_n that_o consist_v not_o of_o any_o society_n visible_o unite_v gather_v into_o the_o belief_n of_o certain_a principle_n and_o unite_v in_o the_o joint_n performance_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n as_o meet_v together_o pray_v preach_v etc._n etc._n there_o be_v and_o still_o must_v be_v a_o certain_a order_n and_o government_n second_o that_o this_o government_n as_o to_o the_o outward_a form_n of_o it_o consist_v of_o certain_a meeting_n appoint_v principal_o for_o that_o end_n yet_o not_o so_o as_o to_o exclude_v act_n of_o worship_n if_o the_o spirit_n move_v thereunto_o three_o the_o object_n of_o this_o government_n be_v twofold_a outward_o and_o inward_o the_o outward_o relate_v main_o to_o the_o care_n of_o the_o poor_a of_o widow_n and_o fatherless_a where_o may_v be_v also_o include_v marriage_n and_o the_o remove_n of_o all_o scandal_n in_o thing_n undeniable_o wrong_a the_o inward_o respect_v a_o apostasy_n either_o in_o principle_n or_o practice_n that_o have_v a_o pretence_n of_o conscience_n and_o that_o either_o in_o deny_v some_o truth_n already_o receive_v and_o believe_v or_o assert_v new_a doctrine_n that_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v which_o again_o to_o subdivide_v may_v either_o be_v in_o thing_n fundamental_a 1674_o 1674_o and_o of_o great_a moment_n or_o in_o thing_n of_o less_o weight_n in_o themselves_o yet_o proceed_v from_o a_o wrong_a spirit_n and_o which_o in_o the_o natural_a and_o certain_a consequence_n of_o they_o tend_v to_o make_v schism_n division_n animosity_n and_o in_o sum_n to_o break_v that_o bond_n of_o love_n and_o unity_n that_o be_v so_o needful_a to_o be_v uphold_v and_o establish_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n and_o here_o come_v also_o under_o this_o consideration_n all_o emulation_n strife_n backbiting_n and_o evil_a surmising_n four_o that_o in_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o definition_n above_o give_v of_o it_o there_o will_v in_o such_o case_n of_o difference_n and_o controversy_n still_o be_v a_o infallible_a judgement_n from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n either_o in_o one_o or_o other_o few_o or_o more_o five_o that_o this_o infallible_a judgement_n be_v only_o and_o unalterable_o annex_v and_o seat_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o god_n not_o to_o any_o particular_a person_n or_o person_n meet_v or_o assembly_n by_o virtue_n of_o any_o settle_a ordination_n office_n place_n or_o station_n that_o such_o may_v have_v or_o have_v have_v in_o the_o church_n no_o man_n man_n nor_o meet_v stand_v or_o be_v invest_v in_o any_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n upon_o other_o term_n than_o so_o long_o as_o he_o or_o they_o abide_v in_o the_o live_a sense_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o life_n in_o their_o own_o particular_n which_o whosoever_o one_o or_o more_o inward_o depart_v from_o ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la lose_v all_o authority_n office_n or_o certain_a discern_v he_o or_o they_o former_o have_v have_v though_o retain_v the_o true_a principle_n and_o sound_a form_n and_o may_v be_v not_o fall_v into_o any_o gross_a practice_n as_o may_v declare_v they_o general_o to_o be_v thus_o wither_v and_o decay_a six_o that_o jesus_n christ_n under_o the_o gospel_n have_v ordinary_o reveal_v his_o will_n in_o such_o case_n through_o the_o elder_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n or_o a_o general_n meet_v who_o testimony_n be_v neither_o to_o be_v despise_v or_o reject_v without_o good_a cause_n neither_o be_v their_o take_n upon_o they_o real_o to_o decide_v any_o just_a ground_n to_o charge_v they_o with_o imposition_n or_o to_o quarrel_v their_o judgement_n unless_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o they_o be_v decay_v and_o have_v lose_v their_o discern_v as_o above_o seven_o that_o to_o submit_v and_o obey_v in_o such_o case_n be_v no_o detract_n from_o the_o common_a privilege_n of_o christian_n to_o be_v inward_o lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n see_v the_o spirit_n have_v lead_v some_o heretofore_o so_o to_o do_v and_o yet_o may_v and_o that_o every_o pretence_n of_o vnclearness_n be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a excuse_n for_o disobedience_n see_v that_o may_v proceed_v from_o obstinacy_n or_o a_o mind_n prepossess_v with_o prejudice_n yet_o say_v i_o not_o any_o aught_o to_o do_v it_o before_o they_o be_v clear_a and_o who_o be_v every_o right_n will_v not_o want_v clearness_n in_o what_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v and_o last_o that_o these_o principle_n be_v no_o way_n taint_v with_o imposition_n or_o contrary_a to_o true_a liberty_n of_o conscience_n and_o that_o they_o fundamental_o differ_v from_o the_o usurpation_n both_o of_o popery_n prelacy_n and_o presbytery_n or_o any_o other_o of_o that_o nature_n robert_n barclay_n robert_n barclay_n his_o vindication_n year_n 1679_o wherein_o the_o scruple_n and_o mistake_v some_o have_v have_v touch_v his_o book_n call_v the_o anarchy_n of_o the_o ranter_n be_v clear_v and_o the_o ground_n upon_o which_o w._n r'_v paper_n against_o it_o be_v build_v remove_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o paper_n be_v brief_o answer_v by_o way_n of_o epistle_n to_o friend_n who_o therein_o have_v or_o may_v be_v concern_v which_o may_v serve_v as_o a_o explanatory_a p0st-script_n to_o robert_n barclay_n book_n of_o government_n aberdeen-prison_n the_o six_o of_o the_o first_o month_n 1679._o dear_a friend_n and_o brethren_n unto_o all_o my_o dear_a friend_n and_o brethren_n unto_o who_o hand_n this_o paper_n may_v come_v or_o who_o may_v be_v any_o way_n more_o particular_o concern_v in_o the_o content_n hereof_o the_o salutation_n of_o my_o unfeigned_a love_n in_o that_o vnchangable_a truth_n whereunto_o it_o have_v please_v the_o lord_n to_o call_v i_o according_a to_o his_o great_a mercy_n so_o as_o to_o be_v a_o partaker_n in_o some_o measure_n of_o the_o peace_n and_o glory_n which_o in_o this_o day_n be_v reveal_v wherewith_o my_o heart_n have_v be_v often_o fill_v as_o i_o have_v wait_v in_o faithfulness_n according_a to_o the_o dispensation_n of_o light_n manifest_v in_o i_o and_o to_o i_o and_o since_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o make_v i_o a_o live_a witness_n of_o the_o precious_a truth_n and_o to_o commit_v unto_o i_o any_o share_n of_o the_o ministry_n thereof_o my_o conscience_n bear_v i_o witness_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n that_o i_o have_v labour_v according_a to_o my_o knowledge_n to_o follow_v love_n and_o peace_n with_o all_o my_o brethren_n ministry_n r._n b_n ministry_n and_o to_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o may_v tend_v to_o advance_v strengthen_v and_o confirm_v unity_n and_o brotherly_a love_n as_o also_o to_o avoid_v what_o have_v a_o tendency_n to_o beget_v strife_n jealousy_n or_o evil_a surmise_n likewise_o i_o have_v study_v as_o well_o in_o my_o public_a testimony_n write_n his_o write_n as_o in_o my_o write_n to_o beware_v of_o any_o thing_n that_o to_o my_o understanding_n may_v minister_v just_a occasion_n of_o stumble_v or_o offcence_n to_o the_o least_o of_o my_o brethren_n or_o the_o young_a and_o weak_a babe_n in_o the_o truth_n as_o such_o as_o be_v conversant_a with_o i_o i●_n my_o own_o country_n as_o well_o as_o those_o elsewhere_o where_o i_o have_v
kingdom_n of_o scotland_n and_o that_o thou_o may_v know_v which_o i_o hope_v thou_o shall_v have_v no_o reason_n to_o be_v trouble_v at_o that_o god_n be_v raise_v up_o and_o increase_v that_o people_n in_o that_o nation_n and_o the_o nation_n shall_v also_o hereby_o know_v that_o the_o truth_n we_o profess_v be_v not_o a_o work_n of_o darkness_n nor_o propagate_v by_o stealth_n &_o that_o we_o be_v not_o ashamed_a of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n because_o we_o know_v it_o to_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n unto_o salvation_n and_o that_o we_o be_v no_o way_n so_o inconsistent_a with_o government_n nor_o such_o disturber_n of_o the_o peace_n as_o our_o enemy_n by_o traduce_v we_o have_v seek_v to_o make_v the_o world_n believe_v we_o be_v for_o which_o to_o thou_o i_o dare_v appeal_n as_o a_o witness_n of_o our_o peaceableness_n and_o christian_a patience_n generation_n to_o come_v shall_v not_o more_o admire_v that_o singular_a step_n of_o divine_a providence_n in_o restore_a thou_o to_o thy_o throne_n without_o outward_a bloodshed_n than_o they_o shall_v admire_v the_o increase_n and_o progress_n of_o this_o truth_n without_o all_o outward_a help_n and_o against_o so_o great_a opposition_n which_o shall_v be-none_a of_o the_o least_o thing_n render_v thy_o memory_n remarkable_a god_n have_v do_v great_a thing_n for_o thou_o he_o have_v sufficient_o show_v thou_o that_o it_o be_v by_o he_o prince_n rule_n and_o that_o he_o can_v pull_v down_o and_o set_v up_o at_o his_o pleasure_n he_o have_v often_o faithful_o warn_v thou_o by_o his_o servant_n since_o he_o restore_v thou_o to_o thy_o royal_a dignity_n that_o thy_o heart_n may_v not_o wax_v wanton_a against_o he_o to_o forget_v his_o mercy_n and_o providence_n towards_o thou_o whereby_o he_o may_v permit_v thou_o to_o be_v soothe_v up_o and_o lull_v asleep_o in_o thy_o sin_n by_o the_o flatter_a of_o court-parasite_n who_o by_o their_o fawn_a be_v the_o ruin_n of_o many_o prince_n there_o be_v no_o king_n in_o the_o world_n who_o can_v so_o experimental_o testify_v of_o god_n providence_n and_o goodness_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o who_o rule_v so_o many_o free_a people_n so_o many_o true_a christian_n which_o thing_n render_v thy_o government_n more_o honourable_a and_o thyself_o more_o considerable_a than_o the_o accession_n of_o many_o nation_n fill_v with_o slavish_a and_o superstitious_a soul_n thou_o have_v taste_v of_o prosperity_n and_o adversity_n thou_o know_v what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v banish_v thy_o native_a country_n to_o be_v overrule_v as_o well_o as_o to_o rule_v and_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n and_o be_v oppress_v thou_o have_v reason_n to_o know_v how_o hateful_a the_o oppressor_n be_v both_o to_o god_n and_o man_n if_o after_o all_o these_o warning_n and_o advertisement_n thou_o do_v not_o turn_v unto_o the_o lord_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n but_o forget_v he_o who_o remember_v thou_o in_o thy_o distress_n and_o give_v up_o thyself_o to_o follow_v lust_n and_o vanity_n sure_o great_a will_v be_v thy_o condemnation_n against_o which_o snare_n as_o well_o as_o the_o temptation_n of_o those_o that_o may_v or_o do_v feed_v thou_o and_o prompt_v thou_o to_o evil_a the_o most_o excellent_a and_o prevalent_a remedy_n will_v be_v to_o apply_v thyself_o to_o that_o light_n of_o christ_n which_o shine_v in_o thy_o conscience_n which_o neither_o can_v nor_o will_v flatter_v thou_o nor_o suffer_v thou_o to_o be_v at_o ease_n in_o thy_o sin_n but_o do_v and_o will_v deal_v plain_o and_o faithful_o with_o thou_o as_o those_o that_o be_v follower_n thereof_o have_v also_o do_v god_n almighty_a who_o have_v so_o signal_o hitherto_o visit_v thou_o with_o his_o love_n so_o touch_v and_o reach_v thy_o heart_n ere_o the_o day_n of_o thy_o visitation_n be_v expire_v that_o thou_o may_v effectual_o turn_v to_o he_o so_o as_o to_o improve_v thy_o place_n and_o station_n for_o his_o name_n so_o wish_v so_o pray_v from_o ury_n the_o place_n of_o my_o pilgrimage_n in_o my_o native_a country_n of_o scotland_n the_o 25_o the_o of_o the_o month_n call_v november_n in_o the_o year_n 1675._o thy_o faithful_a friend_n and_o subject_n robert_n barclay_n r_o b._n unto_o the_o friendly_a reader_n wish_v salvation_n forasmuch_o as_o that_o which_o above_o all_o thing_n i_o propose_v to_o myself_o be_v to_o declare_v and_o defend_v the_o truth_n for_o the_o service_n whereof_o i_o have_v give_v up_o and_o devote_v myself_o and_o all_o that_o be_v i_o therefore_o there_o be_v nothing_o which_o for_o its_o sake_n by_o the_o help_n and_o assistance_n of_o god_n i_o may_v not_o attempt_v and_o in_o this_o confidence_n i_o do_v sometime_o ago_o publish_v certain_a proposition_n of_o divinity_n comprehend_v brief_o the_o chief_a principle_n and_o doctrine_n of_o truth_n which_o appear_v not_o unprofitable_a to_o some_o and_o be_v beyond_o my_o expectation_n well_o receive_v both_o by_o foreigner_n though_o dissent_v from_o we_o albeit_o also_o oppose_v by_o some_o envious_a one_o do_v so_o far_o prevail_v as_o in_o some_o part_n to_o remove_v that_o false_a and_o monstrous_a opinion_n which_o lie_v fame_n and_o the_o malice_n of_o our_o adversary_n have_v implant_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o some_o concern_v we_o and_o our_o doctrine_n in_o this_o respect_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o not_o fit_a to_o spare_v my_o pain_n and_o labour_n therefore_o be_v act_v by_o the_o same_o measure_n of_o the_o divine_a spirit_n and_o the_o like_a design_n of_o propagate_a the_o truth_n by_o which_o i_o publish_v the_o proposition_n i_o judge_v it_o meet_v to_o explain_v they_o somewhat_o more_o large_o at_o this_o time_n and_o defend_v they_o by_o certain_a argument_n perhaps_o my_o method_n of_o write_v may_v seem_v not_o only_o different_a but_o even_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o be_v common_o use_v by_o the_o man_n call_v divine_n with_o which_o i_o be_o not_o concern_v for_o that_o i_o confess_v myself_o to_o be_v not_o only_o no_o imitator_n and_o admirer_n of_o the_o schoolman_n but_o a_o opposer_n and_o despiser_n of_o they_o as_o such_o by_o who_o labour_n i_o judge_v the_o christian_a religion_n to_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v better_v that_o it_o be_v rather_o destroy_v neither_o have_v i_o seek_v to_o accommodate_v this_o my_o work_n to_o itch_a ear_n who_o desire_n rather_o to_o comprehend_v in_o their_o head_n the_o sublime_a notion_n of_o truth_n than_o to_o embrace_v it_o in_o their_o heart_n for_o what_o i_o have_v write_v come_v more_o from_o my_o hearth_n than_o from_o my_o head_n what_o i_o have_v hear_v with_o the_o ear_n of_o my_o soul_n and_o see_v with_o my_o inward_a eye_n and_o my_o hand_n have_v handle_v of_o the_o word_n of_o life_n and_o what_o have_v be_v inward_o manifest_v to_o i_o of_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n that_o do_v i_o declare_v not_o so_o much_o mind_v the_o eloquence_n and_o excellency_n of_o speech_n as_o desire_v to_o demonstrate_v the_o efficacy_n and_o operation_n of_o truth_n and_o if_o i_o err_v sometime_o in_o the_o former_a it_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n for_o i_o act_v not_o here_o the_o grammarian_n or_o the_o orator_n but_o the_o christian_a and_o therefore_o in_o this_o have_v follow_v the_o certain_a rule_n of_o the_o divine_a light_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o to_o make_v a_o end_n what_o i_o have_v write_v be_v write_v not_o to_o feed_v the_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n or_o rather_o vain_a pride_n of_o this_o world_n but_o to_o starve_v and_o oppose_v it_o as_o the_o little_a preface_n prefix_v to_o the_o proposition_n do_v show_v which_o with_o the_o title_n of_o they_o be_v as_o follow_v advertisement_n if_o perhaps_o it_o be_v know_v to_o the_o reader_n ere_o this_o come_v to_o his_o hand_n that_o there_o be_v a_o large_a answer_n write_v to_o the_o latin_a edition_n before_o this_o come_v forth_o by_o john_n brown_n that_o little_a presbyterian_a etc._n etc._n at_o his_o brother_n robert_n macquair_n term_v he_o in_o the_o postscript_n though_o it_o be_v esteem_v that_o such_o as_o will_v serious_o compare_v it_o with_o this_o will_v judge_v no_o further_o reply_v needful_a and_o that_o it_o appear_v not_o to_o deserve_v any_o see_v a_o great_a part_n of_o it_o be_v a_o bundle_n of_o mere_a rail_a and_o abuse_v and_o that_o the_o say_v john_n brown_n have_v now_o manifest_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o person_n so_o furious_a headstrong_a and_o violent_a as_o he_o be_v become_v unsupportable_a to_o the_o chief_a of_o his_o own_o nonconforming_a brethren_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o reply_n write_v to_o it_o divers_a month_n ago_o and_o may_v ever_o long_o come_v to_o public_a view_n if_o the_o difficulty_n of_o print_v and_o distance_n do_v not_o retard_v it_o in_o which_o the_o reader_n may_v find_v satisfaction_n and_o see_v that_o furious_a railer_n sober_o rebuke_v and_o
as_o be_v hope_v solid_o refute_v thesis_n theologicae_fw-la year_n 1675_o to_o the_o clergy_n of_o what_o sort_v soever_o unto_o who_o hand_n these_o may_v come_v but_o more_o particular_o to_o the_o doctor_n professor_n and_o student_n of_o divinity_n in_o the_o university_n and_o school_n of_o great_a britain_n whether_o prelatical_a presbyterian_a or_o any_o other_o robert_n barclay_n a_o servant_n of_o the_o lord_n god_n and_o one_o of_o those_o who_o in_o derision_n be_v call_v quaker_n wish_v unfeigned_a repentance_n unto_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o truth_n friend_n unto_o you_o these_o follow_a proposition_n be_v offer_v in_o which_o they_o be_v read_v and_o consider_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n you_o may_v perceive_v that_o simple_a naked_a truth_n which_o man_n by_o his_o wisdom_n have_v render_v so_o obscure_a and_o mysterious_a that_o the_o world_n be_v even_o burden_v with_o the_o great_a and_o voluminous_a tractate_v which_o be_v make_v about_o it_o and_o by_o their_o vain_a jangle_n and_o commentary_n by_o which_o it_o be_v render_v a_o hundred_o fold_n more_o dark_a and_o intricate_a than_o of_o itself_o it_o be_v which_o great_a learning_n so_o account_v of_o to_o wit_n your_o school_n divinity_n which_o take_v up_o almost_o a_o man_n whole_a life-time_n to_o learn_v bring_v not_o a-whit_n near_o to_o god_n neither_o make_v any_o man_n less_o wicked_a or_o more_o righteous_a than_o he_o be_v therefore_o have_v god_n lay_v aside_o the_o wise_a and_o learned_a and_o the_o disputer_n of_o this_o world_n and_o have_v choose_v a_o few_o despicable_a and_o unlearned_a instrument_n as_o to_o letter-learning_n as_o he_o do_v fisherman_n of_o old_a to_o publish_v his_o pure_a and_o naked_a truth_n and_o to_o free_v it_o of_o these_o mist_n and_o fog_n wherewith_o the_o clergy_n have_v cloud_v it_o that_o the_o people_n may_v admire_v and_o maintain_v they_o and_o among_o several_a other_o who_o god_n have_v choose_v to_o make_v know_v these_o thing_n see_v also_o have_v receive_v in_o measure_n grace_n to_o be_v a_o dispenser_n of_o the_o same_o gospel_n it_o seem_v good_a unto_o i_o according_a to_o my_o duty_n to_o offer_v unto_o you_o these_o proposition_n which_o though_o short_a yet_o be_v weighty_a comprehend_v much_o and_o declare_v what_o the_o true_a ground_n of_o knowledge_n be_v even_o of_o that_o knowledge_n which_o lead_v to_o life_n eternal_a which_o be_v here_o witness_v of_o and_o the_o testimony_n thereof_o leave_v unto_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o your_o conscience_n farewell_o r._n b._n the_o first_o proposition_n concern_v the_o true_a foundation_n of_o knowledge_n see_v the_o height_n of_o all_o happiness_n be_v place_v in_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n this_o be_v life_n eternal_a to_o know_v the_o true_a god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n 17.3_o john_n 17.3_o who_o thou_o have_v send_v the_o true_a and_o right_a understanding_n of_o this_o foundation_n and_o ground_n of_o knowledge_n be_v that_o which_o be_v most_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o believe_v in_o the_o first_o place_n the_o second_o proposition_n concern_v immediate_a revelation_n see_v no_o man_n know_v the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n and_o he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n reveal_v he_o 11.27_o matth._n 11.27_o and_o see_v the_o revelation_n of_o the_o son_n be_v in_o and_o by_o the_o spirit_n therefore_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v that_o alone_a by_o which_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n have_v be_v be_v and_o can_v be_v only_o reveal_v who_o as_o by_o the_o move_n of_o his_o own_o spirit_n convert_v the_o chaos_n of_o this_o world_n into_o that_o wonderful_a order_n wherein_o it_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n and_o create_v man_n a_o live_a soul_n to_o rule_n and_o govern_v it_o so_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o same_o spirit_n he_o have_v manifest_v himself_o all_o along_o unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n both_o patriarch_n prophet_n and_o apostle_n which_o revelation_n of_o god_n by_o the_o spirit_n whether_o by_o outward_a voice_n and_o appearance_n dream_n or_o inward_a objective_n manifestation_n in_o the_o heart_n be_v of_o old_a the_o formal_a object_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o remain_v yet_o so_o to_o be_v since_o the_o object_n of_o the_o saint_n faith_n be_v the_o same_o in_o all_o age_n though_o set_v forth_o under_o divers_a administration_n moreover_o these_o divine_a inward_a revelation_n which_o we_o make_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o the_o build_n up_o of_o true_a faith_n neither_o do_v nor_o can_v ever_o contradict_v the_o outward_a testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o right_a and_o sound_a reason_n yet_o from_o hence_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o these_o divine_a revelation_n be_v to_o be_v subject_v to_o the_o examination_n either_o of_o the_o outward_a testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o of_o the_o natural_a reason_n of_o man_n as_o to_o a_o more_o noble_a or_o certain_a rule_n and_o touchstone_n for_o this_o divine_a revelation_n and_o inward_a illumination_n be_v that_o which_o be_v evident_a and_o clear_a of_o itself_o force_v by_o its_o own_o evidence_n and_o clearness_n the_o well-disposed_a understanding_n to_o assent_v irresistible_o move_v the_o same_o thereunto_o even_o as_o the_o common_a principle_n of_o natural_a truth_n move_v and_o incline_v the_o mind_n to_o a_o natural_a assent_n such_o as_o be_v these_o that_o the_o whole_a be_v great_a than_o the_o part_n that_o two_o contradictory_n saying_n can_v be_v both_o true_a or_o false_a which_o be_v also_o manifest_a according_a to_o our_o adversary_n principle_n who_o suppose_v the_o possibility_n of_o inward_a divine_a revelation_n will_v nevertheless_o confess_v with_o we_o that_o neither_o scripture_n nor_o sound_a reason_n will_v contradict_v it_o and_o yet_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v according_a to_o they_o that_o the_o scripture_n or_o sound_a reason_n shall_v be_v subject_v to_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o divine_a revelation_n in_o the_o heart_n the_o three_o proposition_n concern_v the_o scripture_n from_o these_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o the_o saint_n have_v proceed_v the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n which_o contain_v 1._o a_o faithful_a historical_a account_n of_o the_o act_n of_o god_n people_n in_o divers_a age_n with_o many_o singular_a and_o remarkable_a providence_n attend_v they_o 2._o a_o prophetical_a account_n of_o several_a thing_n whereof_o some_o be_v already_o past_a and_o some_o yet_o to_o come_v 3._o a_o full_a and_o ample_a account_n of_o all_o the_o chief_a principle_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n hold_v forth_o in_o divers_a precious_a declaration_n exhortation_n and_o sentence_n which_o by_o the_o move_n of_o god_n spirit_n be_v at_o several_a time_n and_o upon_o sundry_a occasion_n speak_v and_o write_v unto_o some_o church_n and_o their_o pastor_n nevertheless_o because_o they_o be_v only_o a_o declaration_n of_o the_o fountain_n and_o not_o the_o fountain_n itself_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v esteem_v the_o principal_a ground_n of_o all_o truth_n and_o knowledge_n nor_o yet_o the_o adequate_a primary_n rule_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n nevertheless_o as_o that_o which_o give_v a_o true_a and_o faithful_a testimony_n of_o the_o first_o foundation_n they_o be_v and_o may_v be_v esteem_v a_o secondary_a rule_n subordinate_a to_o the_o spirit_n from_o which_o they_o have_v all_o their_o excellency_n and_o certainty_n for_o as_o by_o the_o inward_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n we_o do_v alone_o true_o know_v they_o so_o they_o testify_v that_o the_o spirit_n be_v that_o guide_n 8.14_o john_n 16.13_o rom._n 8.14_o by_o which_o the_o saint_n be_v lead_v into_o all_o truth_n therefore_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n the_o spirit_n be_v the_o first_o and_o principal_a leader_n and_o see_v we_o do_v therefore_o receive_v and_o believe_v the_o scripture_n because_o they_o proceed_v from_o the_o spirit_n therefore_o also_o the_o spirit_n be_v more_o original_o and_o principal_o the_o rule_n according_a to_o that_o receive_a maxim_n in_o the_o school_n propter_fw-la quod_fw-la unumquodque_fw-la est_fw-la tale_n illud_fw-la ipsum_fw-la est_fw-la magis_fw-la tale_n english_v thus_o that_o for_o which_o a_o thing_n be_v such_o that_o thing_n itself_o be_v more_o such_o the_o four_o proposition_n concern_v the_o condition_n of_o man_n in_o the_o fall_n all_o adam_n posterity_n or_o mankind_n both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n 15._o rom._n 5.12_o 15._o as_o to_o the_o first_o adam_n or_o earthly_a man_n be_v fall_v degenerate_v and_o dead_a deprive_v of_o the_o sensation_n or_o feel_v of_o this_o inward_a testimony_n or_o seed_n of_o god_n and_o be_v subject_a unto_o the_o power_n nature_n and_o seed_n of_o the_o serpent_n which_o he_o sow_v in_o man_n heart_n while_o they_o abide_v in_o this_o natural_a and_o corrupt_a state_n from_o whence_o it_o come_v that_o not_o their_o word_n and_o deed_n only_o but_o all_o their_o
and_o enjoy_v but_o as_o have_v be_v above_o observe_v it_o be_v by_o walk_v in_o this_o light_n that_o we_o have_v this_o communion_n and_o fellowship_n not_o by_o walk_v in_o john_n which_o be_v nonsense_n so_o that_o this_o relative_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d must_v needs_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o light_n whereof_o john_n bear_v witness_n that_o through_o that_o light_n wherewith_o christ_n have_v light_v every_o man_n all_o man_n may_v come_v to_o believe_v see_v then_o this_o light_n be_v the_o light_n of_o jesus_n christ_n sufficient_a the_o light_n be_v supernatural_a save_v and_o sufficient_a and_o the_o light_n through_o which_o man_n come_v to_o believe_v i_o think_v it_o need_v not_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o it_o be_v a_o supernatural_a save_v and_o sufficient_a light_n if_o it_o be_v not_o supernatural_a it_o can_v not_o be_v proper_o call_v the_o light_n of_o jesus_n for_o though_o all_o thing_n be_v he_o and_o of_o he_o and_o from_o he_o yet_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v common_a and_o peculiar_a to_o our_o nature_n as_o be_v a_o part_n of_o they_o we_o be_v not_o say_v in_o so_o special_a a_o manner_n to_o have_v from_o christ._n moreover_o the_o evangelist_n be_v hold_v out_o to_o we_o here_o the_o office_n of_o christ_n as_o mediator_n and_o the_o benefit_n which_o from_o he_o as_o such_o do_v redound_v unto_o we_o obseru._n 2_o second_o it_o can_v be_v any_o of_o the_o natural_a gift_n or_o faculty_n of_o our_o soul_n whereby_o we_o be_v say_v here_o to_o be_v enlighten_v because_o this_o light_n be_v say_v to_o shine_v in_o the_o darkness_n and_o can_v be_v comprehend_v by_o it_o now_o this_o darkness_n be_v no_o other_o condition_n the_o darkness_n be_v man_n natural_a state_n and_o condition_n but_o man_n natural_a condition_n and_o state_n in_o which_o natural_a state_n he_o can_v easy_o comprehend_v and_o do_v comprehend_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v peculiar_a and_o common_a to_o he_o as_o such_o that_o man_n in_o his_o natural_a condition_n be_v call_v darkness_n see_v eph._n 5.8_o for_o you_o be_v sometime_o darkness_n but_o now_o be_v you_o light_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o other_o place_n as_o act_n 26.18_o col._n 1.13_o 1_o thess._n 5.5_o where_o the_o condition_n of_o man_n in_o his_o natural_a state_n be_v term_v darkness_n therefore_o i_o say_v this_o light_n can_v be_v any_o natural_a property_n or_o faculty_n of_o man_n soul_n but_o a_o supernatural_a gift_n and_o grace_n of_o christ._n obseru._n 3_o three_o it_o be_v sufficient_a and_o save_v arg._n 1_o that_o which_o be_v give_v that_o all_o man_n through_o it_o may_v believe_v must_v needs_o be_v save_v and_o sufficient_a that_o by_o walk_v in_o which_o fellowship_n with_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o cleanse_v from_o all_o sin_n be_v possess_v must_v be_v sufficient_a but_o such_o be_v the_o light_n 1_o joh._n 1.7_o therefore_o etc._n etc._n moreover_o that_o which_o we_o be_v command_v to_o believe_v in_o that_o we_o may_v become_v arg._n 2_o the_o child_n of_o the_o light_n must_v be_v a_o supernatural_a sufficient_a and_o save_v principle_n but_o we_o be_v command_v to_o believe_v in_o this_o light_n therefore_o etc._n etc._n the_o proposition_n can_v be_v deny_v the_o assumption_n be_v christ_n own_o word_n joh._n 12.36_o while_o you_o have_v the_o light_n believe_v in_o the_o light_n that_o you_o may_v be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o light_n to_o this_o they_o object_n object_n object_n that_o by_o light_v here_o be_v understand_v christ_n outward_a person_n in_o who_o he_o will_v have_v they_o believe_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v believe_v in_o christ_n that_o be_v answ._n that_o he_o be_v the_o messiah_n that_o be_v to_o come_v be_v not_o deny_v but_o how_o they_o evince_n that_o christ_n intend_v that_o here_o i_o see_v not_o nay_o light_n whether_o christ_n outward_a person_n be_v the_o light_n the_o place_n itself_o show_v the_o contrary_a by_o these_o word_n while_o you_o have_v the_o light_n and_o by_o the_o verse_n go_v before_o walk_v while_o you_o have_v the_o light_n lest_o darkness_n come_v upon_o you_o which_o word_n import_n that_o when_o that_o light_n in_o which_o they_o be_v to_o believe_v be_v remove_v than_o they_o shall_v lose_v the_o capacity_n or_o season_n of_o believe_v now_o this_o can_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o christ_n person_n else_o the_o jew_n may_v have_v believe_v in_o he_o and_o many_o do_v saving_o believe_v in_o he_o as_o all_o christian_n do_v at_o this_o day_n when_o the_o person_n to_o wit_n his_o bodily_a presence_n or_o outward_a man_n be_v far_o remove_v from_o they_o so_o that_o this_o light_n person_n the_o light_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o christ_n outward_a man_n or_o person_n in_o which_o they_o be_v command_v to_o believe_v must_v be_v that_o inward_a spiritual_a light_n that_o shine_v in_o their_o heart_n for_o a_o season_n even_o during_o the_o day_n o●_n man_n visitation_n which_o while_o it_o continue_v to_o call_v invite_v and_o exhort_v man_n be_v say_v to_o have_v it_o and_o may_v believe_v in_o it_o but_o when_o man_n refuse_v to_o believe_v in_o it_o and_o reject_v it_o than_o it_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o light_n to_o show_v they_o the_o way_n but_o leave_v the_o sense_n of_o their_o unfaithfulness_n as_o a_o sting_n in_o their_o conscience_n which_o be_v a_o terror_n and_o darkness_n unto_o they_o and_o upon_o they_o in_o which_o they_o can_v know_v where_o to_o go_v neither_o can_v work_v any_o way_n profitable_o in_o order_n to_o their_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o to_o such_o rebellious_a one_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v say_v to_o be_v darkness_n and_o not_o light_n amos_n 5.18_o from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o though_o many_o receive_v not_o the_o light_n as_o the_o darkness_n comprehend_v it_o not_o nevertheless_o this_o save_v light_n shine_v in_o all_o that_o it_o may_v save_v they_o 11._o cyrill_n alex._n upon_o joh._n lib_n 1._o cap._n 11._o concern_v which_o also_o cyrillus_n alexandrinus_n say_v well_o and_o defend_v our_o principle_n with_o great_a diligence_n and_o watchfulness_n say_v he_o do_v the_o apostle_n john_n endeavour_v to_o anticipate_v and_o prevent_v the_o vain_a thought_n of_o man_n for_o there_o be_v here_o a_o wonderful_a method_n of_o sublime_a thing_n and_o overturning_a of_o objection_n he_o have_v just_a now_o call_v the_o son_n the_o true_a light_n by_o who_o he_o affirm_v that_o every_o man_n come_v into_o the_o world_n be_v enlighten_v yea_o that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o the_o world_n be_v make_v by_o he_o one_o may_v then_o object_n if_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o light_n and_o if_o this_o light_n inlighten_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o suggest_v unto_o man_n piety_n and_o the_o understanding_n of_o thing_n if_o he_o be_v always_o in_o the_o world_n and_o be_v the_o creator_n or_o builder_n of_o the_o world_n why_o be_v he_o so_o long_o unknown_a unto_o the_o world_n it_o seem_v rather_o to_o follow_v because_o he_o be_v unknown_a to_o the_o world_n therefore_o the_o world_n be_v not_o enlighten_v by_o he_o nor_o he_o total_o light_n not_o the_o world_n know_v he_o not_o lest_o any_o shall_v so_o object_n he_o divine_o infer_v and_o the_o world_n know_v he_o not_o let_v not_o the_o world_n say_v he_o accuse_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o his_o eternal_a light_n but_o it_o be_v own_o weakness_n for_o the_o son_n inlighten_v but_o the_o creature_n reject_v the_o grace_n that_o be_v give_v unto_o it_o and_o abuse_v the_o sharpness_n of_o understanding_n grant_v it_o by_o which_o it_o may_v have_v natural_o know_v god_n and_o as_o a_o prodigal_n have_v turn_v its_o sight_n to_o the_o creature_n neglect_v to_o go_v forward_o and_o through_o laziness_n and_o negligence_n bury_v the_o illumination_n and_o despise_v this_o grace_n which_o that_o the_o disciple_n of_o paul_n may_v not_o do_v he_o be_v command_v to_o watch_n therefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v impute_v to_o their_o wickedness_n illumination_n the_o son_n inlighten_v but_o man_n through_o negligence_n bury_v illumination_n who_o be_v illuminate_v and_o not_o unto_o the_o light_n for_o as_o albeit_o the_o sun_n rise_v upon_o all_o yet_o he_o that_o be_v blind_a receive_v no_o benefit_n thereby_o none_o thence_o can_v just_o accuse_v the_o brightness_n of_o the_o sun_n but_o will_v ascribe_v the_o cause_n of_o not_o see_v to_o the_o blindness_n so_o i_o judge_v it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n for_o he_o be_v the_o true_a light_n and_o send_v forth_o his_o brightness_n upon_o all_o but_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n as_o paul_n say_v have_v blind_v the_o mind_n of_o those_o that_o believe_v not_o 2_o cor._n 4.4_o that_o the_o light_n of_o the_o
their_o logic_n silence_n it_o nor_o can_v the_o secure_a among_o they_o stop_v its_o voice_n from_o cry_v and_o reprove_v they_o within_o for_o all_o their_o confidence_n in_o the_o outward_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n or_o of_o what_o he_o have_v suffer_v outward_o for_o they_o for_o as_o have_v be_v often_o say_v in_o a_o day_n it_o strive_v with_o all_o wrestle_v with_o all_o and_o it_o be_v the_o unmortified_a nature_n the_o first_o nature_n the_o old_a adam_n yet_o alive_a in_o the_o wise_a in_o the_o learnede_a in_o the_o most-zealous_a for_o the_o outward_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n that_o deny_v this_o that_o despise_v it_o that_o shut_v it_o out_o to_o their_o own_o condemnation_n they_o come_v all_o under_o this_o description_n every_o one_o that_o do_v evil_a hate_v the_o light_n neither_o come_v to_o the_o light_n lest_o his_o deed_n shall_v be_v reprove_v joh._n 3.20_o so_o that_o it_o may_v be_v say_v now_o and_o we_o can_v say_v from_o a_o true_a and_o certain_a experience_n as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o old_a psal._n 118.22_o matth._n 21.42_o mark_v 12.10_o luke_n 20.17_o act_n 4.11_o the_o stone_n which_o the_o builder_n of_o all_o kind_n have_v reject_v the_o same_o be_v become_v unto_o we_o the_o head_n of_o the_o corner_n glory_n to_o god_n for_o ever_o who_o have_v choose_v we_o a_o first-fruit_n to_o himself_o in_o this_o day_n wherein_o he_o be_v arisen_a to_o plead_v with_o the_o nation_n and_o therefore_o have_v send_v we_o forth_o to_o preach_v this_o everlasting_a gospel_n unto_o all_o christ_n nigh_o to_o all_o the_o light_n in_o all_o the_o seed_n sow_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o that_o man_n may_v come_v and_o apply_v their_o mind_n to_o it_o and_o we_o rejoice_v that_o we_o have_v be_v make_v to_o lay_v down_o our_o wisdom_n and_o learning_n such_o of_o we_o as_o have_v have_v some_o of_o it_o and_o our_o carnal_a reason_v to_o learn_v of_o jesus_n and_o sit_v down_o at_o the_o foot_n of_o jesus_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o hear_v he_o who_o there_o make_v all_o thing_n manifest_v and_o reprove_v all_o thing_n by_o his_o light_n eph._n 5.13_o christ._n the_o wise_a and_o learned_a in_o the_o notion_n crucifier_n of_o christ._n for_o many_o be_v wise_a and_o learned_a in_o the_o notion_n in_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o pharisee_n be_v and_o can_v speak_v much_o of_o christ_n and_o plead_v strong_o against_o infidel_n turk_n and_o jew_n and_o it_o may_v be_v also_o against_o some_o heresy_n who_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n be_v crucify_a christ_n in_o the_o small_a appearance_n of_o his_o seed_n in_o their_o heart_n o_o better_a be_v it_o to_o be_v strip_v naked_a of_o all_o to_o account_v it_o as_o dross_n and_o dung_n and_o become_v a_o fool_n for_o christ_n sake_n thus_o know_v he_o to_o teach_v thou_o in_o thy_o heart_n so_o as_o thou_o may_v witness_v he_o raise_v there_o feel_v the_o virtue_n of_o his_o cross_n there_o and_o say_v with_o the_o apostle_n i_o glory_v in_o nothing_o save_v in_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n whereby_o i_o be_o crucify_a to_o the_o world_n and_o the_o world_n unto_o i_o this_o be_v better_a than_o to_o write_v thousand_o of_o commentary_n and_o to_o preach_v many_o sermon_n and_o it_o be_v thus_o to_o preach_v christ_n and_o direct_a people_n to_o his_o pure_a light_n in_o the_o heart_n mystery_n none_o be_v save_v by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o history_n but_o by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o mystery_n that_o god_n have_v raise_v we_o up_o and_o for_o which_o the_o wise_a man_n of_o this_o world_n account_v we_o fool_n because_o by_o the_o operation_n of_o this_o cross_n of_o christ_n in_o our_o heart_n we_o have_v deny_v our_o own_o wisdom_n and_o will_n in_o many_o thing_n and_o have_v forsake_v the_o vain_a worship_n fashion_n and_o custom_n of_o this_o world_n for_o these_o divers_a century_n the_o world_n have_v be_v full_a of_o a_o dry_a fruitless_a and_o barren_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n feed_v upon_o the_o husk_n and_o neglect_v the_o kernel_n follow_v after_o the_o shadow_n but_o stranger_n to_o the_o substance_n hence_o the_o devil_n matter_n not_o how_o much_o of_o that_o knowledge_n abound_v provide_v he_o can_v but_o possess_v the_o heart_n and_o rule_v in_o the_o will_n crucify_v the_o appearance_n of_o christ_n there_o and_o so_o keep_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o kingdom_n from_o take_v root_n for_o he_o have_v lead_v they_o abroad_o lo_o here_o and_z lo_o there_o and_o have_v make_v they_o wrestle_v in_o a_o false_a zeal_n so_o much_o one_o against_o another_o contend_v for_o this_o outward_a observation_n etc._n contention_n about_o outward_a observation_n and_o lo-here's_a etc._n etc._n and_o for_o the_o other_o outward_a observation_n seek_v christ_n in_o this_o and_o the_o other_o external_n thing_n as_o in_o bread_n and_o wine_n contend_v one_o with_o another_o how_o he_o be_v there_o while_o some_o will_v have_v he_o to_o be_v present_a therein_o this_o way_n and_o some_o the_o other_o way_n and_o some_o in_o scripture_n in_o book_n in_o society_n and_o pilgrimage_n and_o merit_n but_o some_o confide_n in_o a_o external_n barren_a faith_n think_v all_o be_v well_o if_o they_o do_v but_o firm_o believe_v that_o he_o die_v for_o their_o sin_n past_a present_a and_o to_o come_v while_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n christ_n lie_v crucify_a and_o slay_v and_o be_v daily_o resist_v and_o gainsay_v in_o his_o appearance_n in_o their_o heart_n christendom_n the_o call_v of_o god_n to_o blind_a christendom_n thus_o from_o a_o sense_n of_o this_o blindness_n and_o ignorance_n that_o be_v come_v over_o christendom_n it_o be_v that_o we_o be_v lead_v and_o move_v of_o the_o lord_n so_o constant_o and_o frequent_o to_o call_v all_o invite_v all_o request_v all_o to_o turn_v to_o the_o light_n in_o they_o to_o mind_v the_o light_n in_o they_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v in_o they_o and_o that_o in_o the_o name_n power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o lord_n not_o in_o school-argument_n and_o distinction_n for_o which_o many_o of_o the_o wise_a man_n of_o this_o world_n account_v we_o fool_n and_o madman_n we_o do_v charge_n and_o command_v they_o to_o lay_v aside_o their_o wisdom_n to_o come_v down_o out_o of_o that_o proud_a airy_a brain-knowledge_n and_o to_o stop_v that_o mouth_n how_o eloquent_a soever_o to_o the_o worldly_a ear_n it_o may_v appear_v and_o to_o be_v silent_a and_o sit_v down_o as_o in_o the_o dust_n and_o to_o mind_v the_o light_n of_o christ_n in_o their_o own_o conscience_n which_o if_o it_o be_v mind_v they_o will_v find_v as_o a_o sharp_a two-edged_a sword_n in_o their_o heart_n and_o as_o a_o fire_n and_o a_o hammer_n that_o will_v knock_v against_o and_o burn_v up_o all_o that_o carnal_a gather_v natural_a stuff_n and_o make_v the_o stout_a of_o they_o all_o tremble_v and_o become_v quaker_n indeed_o which_o those_o that_o come_v not_o to_o feel_v now_o and_o kiss_v not_o the_o son_n while_o the_o day_n last_v but_o harden_v their_o heart_n will_v feel_v to_o be_v a_o certain_a truth_n when_o it_o be_v too_o late_o to_o conclude_v as_o say_v the_o apostle_n all_o aught_o to_o examine_v themselves_o whether_o they_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n indeed_o and_o try_v their_o own_o self_n for_o except_o jesus_n be_v in_o they_o they_o be_v certain_o reprobate_n 2_o cor._n 13.5_o part_n 2_o §_o xxv_o second_o that_o which_o remain_v now_o to_o be_v prove_v be_v that_o by_o the_o operation_n of_o this_o light_n and_o seed_n some_o have_v be_v prove_v and_o may_v yet_o be_v save_v to_o who_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o outward_o preach_v nor_o the_o history_n of_o christ_n outward_o know_v christ._n that_o many_o by_o the_o light_n may_v be_v save_v that_o have_v not_o the_o outward_a knowledge_n of_o christ._n to_o make_v this_o the_o easy_a we_o have_v already_o show_v how_o that_o christ_n have_v die_v for_o all_o man_n and_o consequent_o these_o be_v enlighten_v by_o christ_n and_o have_v a_o measure_n of_o save_v light_n and_o grace_n yea_o that_o the_o gospel_n though_o not_o in_o any_o outward_a dispensation_n be_v preach_v to_o they_o and_o in_o they_o so_o that_o thereby_o they_o be_v state_v in_o a_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n from_o which_o i_o may_v thus_o argue_v arg._n to_o who_o the_o gospel_n the_o power_n of_o god_n unto_o salvation_n be_v manifest_a they_o may_v be_v save_v whatever_o outward_a knowledge_n they_o want_v but_o this_o gospel_n be_v preach_v in_o every_o creature_n in_o which_o be_v certain_o comprehend_v many_o that_o have_v not_o the_o outward_a knowledge_n therefore_o of_o those_o many_o may_v be_v save_v but_o to_o those_o argument_n by_o which_o it_o have_v be_v prove_v that_o all_o man_n have_v a_o
become_v extinguish_v in_o they_o and_o they_o become_v dead_a as_o to_o it_o and_o so_o it_o retire_v and_o devolve_v itself_o again_o into_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o righteous_a heir_n of_o life_n and_o he_o give_v the_o title_n and_o true_a right_n again_o immediate_o to_o who_o it_o please_v he_o even_o to_o as_o many_o as_o be_v turn_v to_o his_o pure_a light_n in_o their_o conscience_n come_v again_o to_o walk_v in_o his_o righteous_a and_o innocent_a life_n and_o so_o become_v true_a member_n of_o his_o body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n so_o the_o authority_n power_n and_o heirship_n be_v not_o annex_v to_o person_n as_o they_o bear_v the_o bare_a name_n or_o retain_v a_o form_n hold_v the_o mere_a shell_n or_o shadow_n of_o christianity_n but_o the_o promise_n be_v to_o christ_n and_o to_o the_o seed_n in_o who_o the_o authority_n be_v inherent_a and_o in_o as_o many_o as_o be_v one_o with_o he_o and_o unite_v unto_o he_o by_o purity_n and_o holiness_n and_o by_o the_o inward_a renovation_n and_o regeneration_n of_o their_o mind_n moreover_o this_o pretend_a succession_n be_v contrary_a to_o scripture-definition_n and_o nature_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o true_a member_n for_o first_o the_o church_n be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n 1_o tim._n 3.15_o but_o according_a to_o this_o doctrine_n the_o house_n of_o god_n be_v a_o pollute_a nest_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o wickedness_n and_o abomination_n rest_v 1._o the_o house_n of_o god_n be_v no_o pollute_a nest_n no_o atheist_n nor_o pretender_n here_o can_v rest_v make_v up_o of_o the_o most_o ugly_a defile_v and_o perverse_a stone_n that_o be_v in_o the_o earth_n where_o the_o devil_n rule_v in_o all_o manner_n of_o vnrighteousness_n for_o so_o our_o adversary_n confess_v and_o history_n inform_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o have_v be_v as_o some_o of_o their_o historian_n acknowledge_v and_o if_o that_o be_v true_o the_o house_n of_o god_n what_o may_v we_o call_v the_o house_n of_o satan_n or_o may_v we_o call_v it_o therefore_o the_o house_n of_o god_n notwithstanding_o all_o this_o impiety_n because_o they_o have_v a_o bare_a form_n and_o that_o vitiate_v many_o way_n also_o and_o because_o they_o pretend_v to_o the_o name_n of_o christianity_n though_o they_o be_v antichristian_a devilish_a and_o atheistical_a in_o their_o whole_a practice_n and_o spirit_n and_o also_o in_o many_o of_o their_o principle_n will_v not_o this_o infer_v yet_o a_o great_a absurdity_n as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v something_o to_o be_v account_v of_o because_o of_o their_o hypocrisy_n and_o deceit_n and_o false_a pretence_n whereas_o the_o scripture_n look_v upon_o that_o as_o a_o aggravation_n of_o gild_n and_o call_v it_o blasphemy_n rev._n 2.9_o of_o two_o wicked_a man_n he_o be_v most_o to_o be_v abhor_v who_o cover_v his_o wickedness_n with_o a_o vain_a pretence_n of_o god_n and_o righteousness_n even_o so_o these_o abominable_a beast_n and_o fearful_a monster_n who_o look_v upon_o themselves_o to_o be_v bishop_n in_o the_o apostate_n church_n be_v never_o a_o whit_n the_o better_a that_o they_o false_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n unless_o to_o lie_v be_v commendable_a and_o that_o hypocrisy_n be_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n yea_o be_v not_o this_o to_o fall_v into_o that_o evil_n condemn_v among_o the_o jew_n jer._n 7.4_o trust_v you_o not_o in_o lie_v word_n say_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v these_o but_o thorough_o amend_v your_o way_n etc._n etc._n as_o if_o such_o outward_a name_n and_o thing_n be_v the_o thing_n the_o lord_n regard_v and_o not_o inward_a holiness_n or_o can_v that_o then_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v the_o very_a sink_n and_o pit_n of_o wickedness_n from_o which_o so_o much_o error_n superstition_n idolatry_n and_o all_o abomination_n spring_n can_v there_o be_v any_o thing_n more_o contrary_a both_o to_o scripture_n and_o reason_n second_o the_o church_n be_v define_v to_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o dear_a son_n of_o god_n into_o which_o the_o saint_n be_v translate_v undefiled_a 2._o christ_n be_v the_o head_n his_o body_n undefiled_a be_v deliver_v from_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n it_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o from_o he_o by_o joint_n and_o band_n have_v nourishment_n minister_v and_o knit_v together_o increase_v with_o the_o increase_n of_o god_n col._n 2.19_o but_o can_v such_o member_n such_o a_o gather_v as_o we_o have_v demonstrate_v that_o church_n and_o member_n to_o be_v among_o who_o they_o allege_v their_o pretend_a authority_n to_o have_v be_v preserve_v and_o through_o which_o they_o derive_v their_o call_n can_v such_o i_o say_v be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o member_n thereof_o or_o be_v christ_n the_o head_n of_o such_o a_o corrupt_a dead_a dark_a abominable_a stink_a carcase_n if_o so_o then_o may_v we_o not_o as_o well_o affirm_v against_o the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 6.14_o that_o righteousness_n have_v fellowship_n with_o unrighteousness_n that_o light_n have_v communion_n with_o darkness_n belial_n what_o fellowship_n have_v christ_n with_o belial_n that_o christ_n have_v concord_n with_o belial_n that_o a_o believer_n have_v part_n with_o a_o infidel_n and_o that_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n have_v agreement_n with_o idol_n moreover_o no_o man_n be_v call_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n nor_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o as_o his_o vessel_n be_v purify_v and_o so_o he_o fit_v and_o prepare_v for_o god_n to_o dwell_v in_o and_o many_o thus_o fit_v by_o christ_n become_v his_o body_n in_o and_o among_o who_o he_o dwell_v and_o walk_v according_a as_o it_o be_v write_v i_o will_v dwell_v in_o they_o and_o walk_v in_o they_o and_o i_o will_v be_v their_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n it_o be_v therefore_o that_o we_o may_v become_v the_o temple_n of_o christ_n and_o people_n of_o god_n that_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o follow_a verse_n exhort_v say_v out_o of_o the_o prophet_n wherefore_o come_v out_o from_o among_o they_o and_o be_v you_o separate_v say_v the_o lord_n and_o touch_v not_o the_o unclean_a thing_n and_o i_o will_v receive_v you_o and_o i_o will_v be_v a_o father_n unto_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v be_v my_o son_n and_o daughter_n say_v the_o lord_n almighty_n but_o to_o what_o purpose_n be_v all_o this_o exhortation_n and_o why_o shall_v we_o separate_v from_o the_o unclean_a if_o a_o mere_a outward_a profession_n and_o name_n be_v enough_o to_o make_v the_o true_a church_n and_o if_o the_o unclean_a and_o pollute_v be_v both_o the_o church_n and_o lawful_a successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n inherit_v their_o authority_n and_o transmit_v it_o to_o other_o yea_o how_o can_v the_o church_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o vvn_n from_o the_o kingdom_n and_o power_n of_o darkness_n and_o what_o need_n yea_o what_o possibility_n of_o be_v translate_v out_o of_o the_o one_o into_o the_o other_o if_o those_o that_o make_v up_o the_o kingdom_n and_o power_n of_o darkness_n be_v real_a member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o simple_a member_n only_o but_o the_o very_a pastor_n and_o teacher_n of_o it_o but_o how_o do_v they_o increase_v in_o the_o increase_n of_o god_n and_o receive_v spiritual_a nourishment_n from_o christ_n the_o prop._n 01_o head_n that_o be_v enemy_n of_o he_o in_o their_o heart_n by_o wicked_a work_n and_o open_o go_v into_o perdition_n very_o as_o no_o metaphysical_a and_o nice_a distinction_n that_o though_o they_o be_v practical_o office_n priest_n frivolous_a distinction_n of_o enemy_n to_o god_n by_o practice_n and_o member_n of_o his_o church_n by_o office_n as_o to_o their_o own_o private_a state_n enemy_n to_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o so_o servant_n of_o satan_n yet_o they_o be_v by_o virtue_n of_o their_o office_n member_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o able_a to_o transmit_v the_o succession_n i_o say_v as_o such_o invent_v and_o frivolous_a distinction_n will_v not_o please_v the_o lord_n god_n neither_o will_v he_o be_v delude_v by_o such_o nor_o make_v up_o the_o glorious_a body_n of_o his_o church_n with_o such_o mere_a outside_n hypocritical_a show_n nor_o be_v behold_v to_o such_o paint_a sepulcher_n for_o to_o be_v member_n of_o his_o body_n which_o be_v sound_a pure_a and_o undefiled_a and_o therefore_o he_o need_v not_o such_o false_a and_o corrupt_a member_n to_o make_v up_o the_o defect_n of_o it_o so_o neither_o will_v such_o distinction_n satisfy_v true_o tender_a and_o christian_a conscience_n especial_o consider_v the_o apostle_n be_v so_o far_o from_o desire_v we_o to_o regard_v that_o as_o that_o we_o be_v
spirit_n and_o will_n and_o not_o from_o in_o and_z by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n he_o sin_v in_o all_o and_o be_v not_o accept_v of_o god_n 4._o prov._n 21._o for_o 4._o for_o hence_o both_o the_o plough_v and_o pray_v of_o the_o wicked_a be_v sin_n as_o also_o whatever_a a_o man_n act_n in_o and_o from_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o god_n have_v his_o understanding_n and_o will_n influence_v and_o move_v by_o it_o whether_o it_o be_v action_n religious_a civil_a or_o even_o natural_a he_o be_v accept_v in_o so_o do_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o be_v bless_v in_o they_o from_o what_o be_v say_v it_o do_v appear_v 1.25_o ja._n 1.25_o how_o frivolous_a and_o impertinent_a their_o objection_n be_v that_o say_v they_o wait_v upon_o god_n in_o pray_v and_o preach_v god_n to_o pray_v and_o preach_v without_o the_o spirit_n be_v offence_n to_o god_n since_o wait_v do_v of_o itself_o imply_v a_o passive_a dependence_n rather_o than_o a_o act_n and_o since_o it_o be_v and_o shall_v yet_o be_v more_o show_v that_o preach_v and_o pray_v without_o the_o spirit_n be_v a_o offend_a of_o god_n not_o a_o wait_v upon_o he_o and_o that_o pray_v and_o preach_v by_o the_o spirit_n pre-supposes_a necessary_o a_o silent_a wait_v for_o to_o feel_v the_o motion_n and_o influence_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o lead_v thereunto_o and_o last_o that_o in_o several_a of_o these_o place_n where_o pray_v be_v command_v as_o matth._n 26.41_o mark_v 13.33_o luke_n 21.36_o 1_o pet._n 4.7_o watch_v be_v special_o prefix_v as_o a_o previous_a preparation_n thereunto_o so_o that_o we_o do_v well_o and_o certain_o conclude_v that_o since_o wait_v and_o watch_v be_v so_o particular_o command_v and_o recommend_v and_o this_o can_v be_v true_o perform_v but_o in_o this_o inward_a silence_n of_o the_o mind_n from_o man_n own_o thought_n and_o imagination_n this_o silence_n be_v and_o must_v necessary_o be_v a_o special_a and_o principal_a part_n of_o god_n worship_n §_o xii_o but_o second_o counterfeit_v ii_o this_o silent_a wait_v the_o devil_n can_v counterfeit_v the_o excellency_n of_o this_o silent_a wait_v upon_o god_n do_v appear_v in_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o the_o enemy_n viz._n the_o devil_n to_o counterfeit_v it_o so_o as_o for_o any_o soul_n to_o be_v deceive_v or_o delude_v by_o he_o in_o the_o exercise_n thereof_o now_o in_o all_o other_o matter_n he_o may_v mix_v himself-in_a with_o the_o natural_a mind_n of_o man_n and_o so_o by_o transform_v himself_o he_o may_v deceive_v the_o soul_n by_o busy_v it_o about_o thing_n perhaps_o innocent_a in_o themselves_o while_o yet_o he_o keep_v they_o from_o behold_v the_o pure_a light_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o from_o know_v distinct_o his_o duty_n and_o do_v of_o it_o for_o that_o envious_a spirit_n of_o man_n eternal_a happiness_n know_v well_o how_o to_o accommodate_v himself_o and_o fit_v his_o snare_n for_o all_o the_o several_a disposition_n and_o inclination_n of_o man_n if_o he_o find_v one_o not_o fit_a to_o be_v engage_v with_o gross_a sin_n or_o worldly_a lust_n but_o rather_o averse_a from_o they_o and_o religious_o incline_v he_o can_v fit_v himself_o to_o beguile_v such_o a_o one_o by_o suffer_v his_o thought_n and_o imagination_n to_o run_v upon_o spiritual_a matter_n and_o so_o hurry_v they_o to_o work_v act_n and_o meditate_v in_o their_o own_o wi_n for_o he_o well_o know_v that_o so_o long_o as_o self_n bear_v rule_v and_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v not_o the_o principal_a and_o chief_a actor_n man_n be_v not_o put_v out_o of_o his_o reach_n so_o therefore_o he_o can_v accompany_v prop._n 10_o the_o priest_n to_o the_o altar_n the_o preacher_n to_o the_o pulpit_n the_o zealot_n to_o his_o prayer_n yea_o the_o doctor_n and_o professor_n of_o divinity_n to_o his_o study_n and_o there_o he_o can_v cheerful_o suffer_v he_o to_o labour_n and_o work_v among_o his_o book_n out_o altar_n prayer_n pulpit_n study_n can_v shut_v the_o devil_n out_o yea_o and_o help_v he_o to_o find_v out_o and_o invent_v subtle_a distinction_n and_o quiddity_n by_o which_o both_o his_o mind_n and_o other_o through_o he_o may_v be_v keep_v from_o hee_v god_n light_n in_o the_o conscience_n and_o wait_v upon_o he_o there_o be_v not_o any_o exercise_n whatsoever_o wherein_o he_o can_v enter_v and_o have_v a_o chief_a place_n so_o as_o the_o soul_n many_o time_n can_v discern_v it_o except_o in_o this_o alone_a for_o he_o can_v only_o work_v in_o and_o by_o the_o natural_a man_n and_o his_o faculty_n by_o secret_o act_v upon_o his_o imagination_n and_o desire_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o when_o he_o to_o wit_n the_o natural_a man_n be_v silent_a there_o he_o must_v also_o stand_v and_o therefore_o when_o the_o soul_n come_v to_o this_o silence_n and_z as_o it_o be_v be_v bring_v to_o nothingness_n as_o to_o her_o own_o working_n than_o the_o devil_n be_v shut_v out_o for_o the_o pure_a presence_n of_o god_n and_o shine_v of_o his_o light_n he_o can_v abide_v because_o so_o long_o as_o a_o man_n be_v think_v and_o meditate_v as_o of_o himself_o he_o can_v be_v sure_a but_o the_o devil_n be_v influence_v he_o therein_o but_o when_o he_o come_v whole_o to_o be_v silent_a as_o the_o pure_a light_n of_o god_n shine_v in_o upon_o he_o than_o he_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o devil_n be_v shut_v out_o for_o beyond_o the_o imagination_n he_o can_v go_v which_o we_o often_o find_v by_o sensible_a experience_n for_o he_o that_o of_o old_a be_v say_v to_o have_v come_v to_o the_o gather_v together_o of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v not_o want_v to_o come_v to_o our_o assembly_n and_o indeed_o he_o can_v well_o enter_v and_o work_v in_o a_o meeting_n that_o be_v silent_a only_a as_o to_o word_n either_o by_o keep_v the_o mind_n in_o various_a thought_n and_o imagination_n or_o by_o stupify_a they_o so_o as_o to_o overwhelm_v they_o with_o a_o spirit_n of_o heaviness_n and_o slothfulness_n but_o when_o we_o retire_v out_o of_o all_o and_o be_v turn_v in_o both_o by_o be_v diligent_a and_o watchful_a upon_o the_o one_o hand_n and_o also_o silent_a and_o retire_v out_o of_o all_o our_o thought_n upon_o the_o other_o as_o we_o abide_v in_o this_o sure_a place_n we_o feel_v ourselves_o out_o of_o his_o reach_n yea_o oftentime_o the_o power_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n will_v break_v forth_o and_o appear_v just_a as_o the_o bright_a sun_n through_o many_o cloud_n and_o mist_n to_o the_o dispel_v of_o that_o power_n of_o darkness_n which_o will_v also_o be_v sensible_o feel_v seek_v to_o cloud_n and_o darken_v the_o mind_n and_o whole_o to_o keep_v it_o from_o pure_o wait_v upon_o god_n §_o xiii_o three_o the_o excellency_n of_o this_o worship_n do_v appear_v in_o that_o it_o can_v neither_o be_v stop_v devil_n iii_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o quaker_n not_o stop_v nor_o interrupt_v by_o man_n nor_o devil_n nor_o interrupt_v by_o the_o malice_n of_o man_n or_o devil_n as_o all_o other_o can_v now_o interruption_n and_o stop_n of_o worship_n may_v be_v understand_v in_o a_o twofold_a respect_n either_o as_o we_o be_v hinder_v from_o meet_v as_o be_v outward_o by_o violence_n separate_v one_o from_o another_o or_o when_o permit_v to_o meet_v together_o as_o we_o be_v interrupt_v by_o the_o tumult_n noise_n and_o confusion_n which_o such_o as_o be_v malicious_a may_v use_v to_o molest_v or_o distract_v we_o now_o in_o both_o these_o respect_v this_o worship_n do_v great_o overpass_v all_o other_o for_o how_o far_o soever_o people_n be_v separate_v or_o hinder_v from_o come_v together_o yet_o as_o every_o one_o be_v inward_o gather_v to_o the_o measure_n of_o life_n in_o himself_o there_o be_v a_o secret_a unity_n and_o fellowship_n enjoy_v which_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o his_o instrument_n can_v never_o break_v or_o hinder_v but_o second_o it_o do_v as_o well_o appear_v as_o to_o these_o molestation_n which_o occur_v when_o we_o be_v meet_v together_o what_o advantage_n this_o true_a and_o spiritual_a worship_n give_v we_o beyond_o all_o other_o seeing_z in_o despite_n of_o a_o thousand_o interruption_n and_o abuse_n one_o of_o which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o have_v stop_v all_o other_o sort_n of_o christian_n we_o have_v be_v able_a through_o the_o nature_n of_o this_o worship_n to_o keep_v it_o uninterrupted_a as_o to_o god_n and_o also_o at_o the_o same_o time_n to_o show_v forth_o a_o example_n of_o our_o christian_a patience_n towards_o all_o even_o oftentimes_o to_o the_o reach_a and_o convince_a of_o our_o opposer_n for_o there_o be_v no_o sort_n of_o worship_n use_v by_o other_o which_o can_v subsist_v though_o they_o be_v permit_v prop._n 11_o to_o meet_a unless_o they_o be_v either_o authorize_v and_o protect_v by_o the_o magistrate_n or_o defend_v
no_o such_o thing_n nor_o yet_o be_v oftentime_o sensible_a of_o it_o must_v needs_o stand_v in_o the_o entice_a word_n of_o man_n wisdom_n since_o it_o be_v by_o the_o mere_a wisdom_n of_o man_n it_o be_v seek_v after_o and_o the_o mere_a strength_n of_o man_n eloquence_n and_o entice_a word_n it_o be_v utter_v and_o therefore_o no_o wonder_n if_o the_o faith_n of_o such_o as_o hear_v and_o depend_v upon_o such_o preacher_n and_o preach_n stand_v in_o the_o wisdom_n of_o man_n and_o not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o god_n the_o apostle_n declare_v that_o they_o speak_v not_o in_o the_o word_n which_o man_n wisdom_n teach_v but_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v 1_o cor._n 2.13_o but_o these_o preacher_n confess_v that_o they_o be_v stranger_n to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n his_o motion_n and_o operation_n neither_o do_v they_o wait_v to_o feel_v they_o and_o therefore_o they_o speak_v in_o the_o word_n which_o their_o own_o natural_a wisdom_n and_o learning_n teach_v they_o mix_v they_o in_o and_o add_v they_o to_o such_o word_n as_o they_o steal_v of_o the_o scripture_n and_o other_o book_n and_o therefore_o speak_v not_o what_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v three_o this_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o method_n and_o order_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n mention_v by_o the_o apostle_n revelation_n 3._o true_a church_n method_n be_v to_o speak_v by_o revelation_n 1_o cor._n 14.30_o etc._n etc._n where_o in_o preach_v every_o one_o be_v to_o wait_v for_o his_o revelation_n and_o to_o give_v place_n one_o unto_o another_o according_a as_o thing_n be_v reveal_v but_o here_o there_o be_v no_o wait_v for_o a_o revelation_n but_o the_o preacher_n must_v speak_v and_o not_o that_o which_o be_v reveal_v unto_o he_o but_o what_o he_o have_v prepare_v and_o premeditate_a beforehand_o last_o by_o this_o kind_n of_o preach_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o shall_v be_v the_o chief_a instructor_n and_o teacher_n of_o god_n people_n teacher_n 4._o the_o spirit_n be_v shut_v out_o by_o priest_n to_o be_v the_o teacher_n and_o who_o influence_n be_v that_o only_a which_o make_v all_o preach_a effectual_a and_o beneficial_a for_o the_o edify_n of_o soul_n be_v shut_v out_o and_o man_n natural_a wisdom_n learning_n and_o part_n set_v up_o and_o exalt_v which_o no_o doubt_n be_v a_o great_a and_o chief_a reason_n why_o the_o preach_a among_o the_o generality_n of_o christian_n be_v so_o vnfruitful_a and_o vnsuccessful_a yea_o according_a to_o this_o doctrine_n the_o devil_n may_v preach_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v hear_v also_o see_v he_o both_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o have_v as_o much_o eloquence_n as_o any_o but_o what_o avail_v excellency_n of_o speech_n if_o the_o demonstration_n and_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v want_v which_o touch_v the_o conscience_n we_o see_v that_o when_o the_o devil_n confess_v to_o the_o truth_n yet_o christ_n will_v have_v none_o of_o his_o testimony_n and_o as_o these_o pregnant_a testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o prove_v this_o part_n of_o preach_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n so_o do_v they_o also_o prove_v that_o of_o we_o before_o affirm_v to_o be_v conform_v thereunto_o object_n object_n §_o xx._n but_o if_o any_o object_n after_o this_o manner_n have_v not_o many_o be_v benefit_v yea_o and_o both_o convert_v and_o edify_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o such_o as_o have_v premeditate_a their_o preach_n yea_o and_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n often_o concur_v by_o its_o divine_a influence_n with_o preach_n thus_o premeditate_a so_o as_o they_o have_v be_v powerful_o bear_v in_o upon_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o hearer_n to_o their_o advantage_n i_o answer_v though_o that_o be_v grant_v which_o i_o shall_v not_o deny_v it_o will_v not_o infer_v that_o the_o thing_n be_v good_a in_o itself_o more_o than_o because_o paul_n be_v meet_v with_o by_o christ_n to_o the_o convert_v of_o his_o soul_n ride_v to_o damascus_n to_o persecute_v the_o saint_n that_o he_o do_v well_o in_o so_o do_v neither_o particular_a action_n answ._n nor_o yet_o whole_a congregation_n as_o we_o above_o observe_v be_v to_o be_v measure_v by_o the_o act_n of_o god_n condescension_n in_o time_n of_o ignorance_n but_o beside_o good_a paul_n persecute_v be_v convert_v be_v therefore_o persecute_v good_a it_o have_v oftentime_o fall_v out_o that_o god_n have_v a_o regard_n to_o the_o simplicity_n and_o integrity_n either_o of_o the_o preacher_n or_o hearer_n have_v fall_v in_o upon_o the_o heart_n of_o a_o preacher_n by_o his_o power_n and_o holy_a influence_n and_o thereby_o have_v lead_v they_o to_o speak_v thing_n which_o be_v not_o in_o his_o premeditate_a discourse_n and_o which_o perhaps_o he_o never_o think_v of_o before_o and_o those_o pass_a ejaculation_n and_o unpremeditated_a but_o live_a exhortation_n have_v prove_v more_o beneficial_a and_o refreshful_a both_o to_o preacher_n and_o hearer_n than_o all_o their_o premeditate_a sermon_n but_o all_o that_o will_v not_o allow_v they_o to_o continue_v in_o these_o thing_n which_o in_o themselves_o be_v not_o approve_v but_o contrary_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o god_n be_v raise_v up_o a_o people_n to_o serve_v he_o according_a to_o the_o primitive_a purity_n and_o spirituality_n yea_o such_o act_n of_o god_n condescension_n in_o time_n of_o darkness_n and_o ignorance_n shall_v engage_v all_o more_o and_o more_o to_o follow_v he_o according_a as_o he_o reveal_v his_o most_o perfect_a and_o spiritual_a way_n §_o xxi_o have_v hitherto_o speak_v of_o preach_v inward_a ii_o of_o prayer_n how_o the_o outward_a be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o inward_a now_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o speak_v of_o pray_v concern_v which_o the_o like_a controversy_n arise_v our_o adversary_n who_o religion_n be_v all_o for_o the_o most_o part_n outside_o and_o such_o who_o act_n be_v the_o mere_a product_n of_o man_n natural_a will_n and_o ability_n as_o they_o can_v preach_v so_o can_v they_o pray_v when_o they_o please_v and_o therefore_o have_v their_o set_a particular_a prayer_n i_o meddle_v not_o with_o the_o controversy_n among_o themselves_o concern_v this_o some_o of_o they_o be_v for_o set_a prayer_n as_o a_o liturgy_n other_o for_o such_o as_o are_z ex_fw-la tempore_fw-la conceive_v it_o suffice_v i_o that_o all_o of_o they_o agree_v in_o this_o that_o the_o motion_n and_o influence_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v previous_a thereunto_o and_o therefore_o they_o have_v set_a time_n in_o their_o public_a worship_n as_o before_o and_o after_o preach_v spirit_n the_o priest_n set_v time_n to_o preach_v and_o pray_v deny_v the_o spirit_n and_o in_o their_o private_a devotion_n as_o morning_n and_o evening_n and_o before_o and_o after_o meat_n and_o other_o such_o occasion_n at_o which_o they_o precise_o set_v about_o the_o perform_n of_o their_o prayer_n by_o speak_v word_n to_o god_n whether_o they_o feel_v any_o motion_n or_o influence_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o not_o so_o that_o some_o of_o the_o chief_a have_v confess_v that_o they_o have_v thus_o pray_v without_o the_o motion_n or_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n acknowledge_v that_o they_o sin_v in_o so_o do_v yet_o they_o say_v they_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o their_o duty_n to_o do_v so_o though_o to_o pray_v without_o the_o spirit_n be_v sin_n we_o free_o confess_v that_o prayer_n be_v both_o very_a profitable_a and_o a_o necessary_a duty_n command_v and_o fit_a to_o be_v practise_v frequent_o by_o all_o christian_n but_o as_o we_o can_v do_v nothing_o without_o christ_n so_o neither_o can_v we_o pray_v without_o the_o concurrence_n and_o assistance_n of_o his_o spirit_n but_o that_o the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n may_v be_v the_o better_o understand_v let_v it_o be_v consider_v first_o that_o prayer_n be_v twofold_a inward_a and_o outward_a inward_a prayer_n be_v that_o secret_a turn_n of_o the_o mind_n towards_o god_n whereby_o be_v what_o inward_a prayer_n be_v be_v secret_o touch_v and_o awaken_v by_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o conscience_n and_o so_o bow_v down_o under_o the_o sense_n of_o its_o iniquity_n vnworthiness_n and_o misery_n it_o look_v up_o to_o god_n and_o join_v issue_n with_o the_o secret_a shining_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o god_n it_o breathe_v towards_o he_o and_o be_v constant_o breathe_v forth_o some_o secret_a desire_n and_o aspiration_n towards_o he_o it_o be_v in_o this_o sense_n that_o we_o be_v so_o frequent_o in_o scripture_n command_v to_o pray_v continual_o luke_n 18.1_o 1_o thess._n 5.17_o eph._n 6.18_o luke_n 21.36_o which_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o outward_a prayer_n because_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o man_n shall_v be_v always_o upon_o their_o knee_n express_v word_n of_o prayer_n and_o this_o will_v hinder_v they_o from_o the_o exercise_n of_o those_o duty_n no_o less_o positive_o command_v
withal_o and_o contend_v for_o arg._n §_o vii_o but_o again_o if_o water-baptism_n have_v be_v a_o ordinance_n of_o the_o gospel_n than_o the_o apostle_n paul_n will_v have_v be_v send_v to_o administer_v it_o but_o he_o declare_v positive_o 1_v cor._n 1.17_o that_o christ_n send_v he_o not_o to_o baptise_v but_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n the_o reason_n of_o that_o consequence_n be_v undeniable_a because_o the_o apostle_n paul_n commission_n be_v as_o large_a as_o that_o of_o any_o of_o they_o and_o consequent_o he_o be_v in_o special_a manner_n the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o gentile_n jew_n iv_o that_o water-baptism_n be_v no_o badge_n of_o christian_n like_o circumcision_n of_o the_o jew_n if_o water-baptism_n as_o our_o adversary_n contend_v be_v to_o be_v account_v the_o badge_n of_o christianity_n he_o have_v more_o need_n than_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n to_o be_v send_v to_o baptize_v with_o water_n that_o he_o may_v mark_v the_o gentile_n convert_v by_o he_o with_o that_o christian_a sign_n but_o indeed_o the_o reason_n hold_v better_a thus_o that_o since_o paul_n be_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o that_o in_o his_o ministry_n he_o do_v through_o all_o as_o by_o his_o epistle_n appear_v labour_v to_o wean_v they_o from_o the_o former_a jewish_a ceremony_n and_o observation_n though_o in_o so_o do_v he_o be_v sometime_o undeserved_o judge_v by_o other_o of_o his_o brethren_n who_o be_v unwilling_a to_o lay_v aside_o those_o ceremony_n therefore_o his_o commission_n though_o as_o full_a as_o to_o the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n and_o new_a covenant-dispensation_n as_o that_o of_o the_o other_o apostle_n do_v not_o require_v of_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v lead_v those_o convert_v into_o such_o jewish_a observation_n and_o baptism_n however_o that_o practice_n be_v indulge_v in_o and_o practise_v by_o the_o other_o apostle_n among_o their_o jewish_a proselyte_n for_o which_o cause_n he_o thank_v god_n that_o he_o baptize_v so_o few_o 1.14_o 1_o cor._n 1.14_o intimate_v that_o what_o he_o do_v therein_o he_o do_v not_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o apostolic_a commission_n but_o rather_o in_o condescendence_n to_o their_o weakness_n baptize_v paul_n be_v not_o send_v to_o baptize_v even_o as_o at_o another_o time_n he_o circumcise_a timothy_n our_o adversary_n to_o evade_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o testimony_n usual_o allege_v object_n 1_o that_o by_o this_o be_v only_o to_o be_v understand_v that_o he_o be_v not_o send_v principal_o to_o baptize_v not_o that_o he_o be_v not_o send_v at_o all_o but_o this_o exposition_n since_o it_o contradict_v the_o positive_a word_n of_o the_o text_n answ._n and_o have_v no_o better_a foundation_n than_o the_o affirmation_n of_o its_o assertor_n be_v just_o reject_v as_o spurious_a until_o they_o bring_v some_o better_a proof_n for_o it_o he_o say_v not_o i_o be_v not_o send_v principal_o to_o baptize_v but_o i_o be_v not_o send_v to_o baptize_v as_o for_o what_o they_o urge_v by_o way_n of_o confirmation_n from_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n where_o not_o be_v to_o be_v so_o take_v as_o where_o it_o be_v say_v confir_n confir_n i_o will_v have_v mercy_n and_o not_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v 6.6_o matth._n 9_o 13._o hos._n 6.6_o that_o god_n require_v principal_o mercy_n not_o exclude_v sacrifice_n i_o say_v refu●_n refu●_n this_o place_n be_v abundant_o explain_v by_o the_o follow_a word_n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n more_o than_o burnt-offering_n by_o which_o it_o clear_o appear_v that_o burnt-offering_n which_o be_v one_o with_o sacrifice_n be_v not_o exclude_v but_o there_o be_v no_o such_o word_n add_v in_o that_o of_o paul_n and_o therefore_o the_o parity_n be_v not_o demonstrate_v to_o be_v alike_o and_o consequent_o the_o instance_n not_o sufficient_a unless_o they_o can_v prove_v that_o it_o ought_v so_o to_o be_v admit_v here_o else_o we_o may_v interpret_v by_o the_o same_o rule_n all_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n the_o same_o way_n as_o where_o the_o apostle_n say_v 1_o cor._n 2.5_o that_o your_o faith_n may_v not_o stand_v in_o the_o wisdom_n of_o man_n but_o in_o the_o power_n of_o god_n it_o may_v be_v understand_v it_o shall_v not_o stand_v principal_o so_o how_o may_v the_o gospel_n by_o this_o liberty_n of_o interpretation_n be_v pervert_v if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o abuse_n of_o this_o baptism_n among_o the_o corinthian_n in_o object_n 2_o divide_v themselves_o according_a to_o the_o person_n by_o who_o they_o be_v baptize_v make_v the_o apostle_n speak_v so_o but_o that_o the_o abuse_v of_o a_o thing_n do_v not_o abolish_v it_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v true_a it_o do_v not_o provide_v the_o thing_n be_v lawful_a and_o necessary_a answ._n and_o that_o no_o doubt_n the_o abuse_n abovesaid_a give_v the_o apostle_n occasion_n so_o to_o write_v but_o let_v it_o from_o this_o be_v consider_v how_o the_o apostle_n exclude_v baptise_v not_o preach_v though_o the_o abuse_n mark_v proceed_v from_o that_o no_o less_o than_o from_o the_o other_o for_o these_o corinthian_n do_v denominate_v themselves_o from_o those_o different_a person_n by_o who_o preach_v as_o well_o as_o from_o those_o by_o who_o they_o be_v baptize_v they_o be_v convert_v as_o by_o the_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7_o and_o ver_fw-la of_o the_o 3_o d_o ch._n may_v appear_v and_o yet_o for_o to_o remove_v that_o abuse_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o say_v forbear_v that_o preach_v be_v a_o stand_a ordinance_n and_o not_o to_o be_v forbear_v he_o be_v not_o send_v to_o preach_v nor_o yet_o do_v he_o rejoice_v that_o he_o have_v only_o preach_v to_o a_o few_o because_o preach_v be_v a_o stand_a ordinance_n in_o the_o church_n be_v not_o because_o of_o any_o abuse_n that_o the_o devil_n may_v tempt_v any_o to_o make_v of_o it_o to_o be_v forbear_v by_o such_o as_o be_v call_v to_o perform_v it_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n wherefore_o the_o apostle_n according_o chap._n 3.8_o 9_o inform_v they_o as_o to_o that_o how_o to_o remove_v that_o abuse_n but_o as_o to_o water-baptism_n for_o that_o it_o be_v no_o stand_a ordinance_n of_o christ_n but_o only_o practise_v as_o in_o condescendence_n to_o the_o jew_n and_o by_o some_o apostle_n to_o some_o gentile_n also_o there_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o apostle_n perceive_v the_o abuse_n of_o he_o let_v the_o corinthian_n understand_v how_o little_a stress_n be_v to_o be_v lay_v upon_o it_o by_o show_v they_o that_o he_o be_v glad_a that_o he_o have_v administer_v this_o ceremony_n to_o so_o few_o of_o they_o and_o by_o tell_v they_o plain_o that_o it_o be_v no_o part_n of_o his_o commission_n neither_o that_o which_o he_o be_v send_v to_o administer_v query_n some_o ask_v we_o how_o we_o know_v that_o baptise_v here_o be_v mean_v of_o water_n and_o not_o of_o the_o spirit_n which_o if_o it_o be_v than_o it_o will_v exclude_v baptism_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o well_o as_o of_o water_n answ._n i_o answer_v such_o as_o ask_v the_o question_n i_o suppose_v speak_v it_o not_o as_o doubt_v that_o this_o be_v say_v of_o water-baptism_n which_o be_v more_o than_o manifest_a for_o since_o the_o apostle_n paul_n message_n be_v to_o turn_v people_n from_o darkness_n to_o light_n and_o convert_v they_o to_o god_n spirit_n that_o which_o convert_v to_o christ_n be_v baptism_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o as_o many_o as_o be_v thus_o turn_v and_o convert_v so_o as_o to_o have_v the_o answer_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n towards_o god_n and_o to_o have_v put_v on_o christ_n and_o be_v arisen_a with_o he_o in_o newness_n of_o life_n be_v baptize_v with_o the_o baptism_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o who_o will_v say_v that_o only_o these_o few_o mention_v there_o to_o be_v baptize_v by_o paul_n be_v come_v to_o this_o or_o that_o to_o turn_v or_o bring_v they_o to_o this_o condition_n be_v not_o even_o admit_v our_o adversary_n interpretation_n as_o principal_o a_o part_n of_o paul_n ministry_n as_o any_o other_o since_o than_o our_o adversary_n do_v take_v this_o place_n for_o water-baptism_n as_o indeed_o it_o be_v we_o may_v lawful_o take_v it_o so_o also_o urge_v it_o upon_o they_o why_o the_o word_n baptism_n and_o baptise_v be_v use_v by_o the_o apostle_n where_o that_o of_o water_n and_o not_o of_o the_o spirit_n be_v only_o understand_v shall_v hereafter_o be_v speak_v to_o i_o come_v part_n two_o now_o to_o consider_v the_o reason_n allege_v by_o such_o as_o plead_v for_o water-baptism_n which_o be_v also_o the_o objection_n use_v against_o the_o discontinuance_n of_o it_o object_n i_o §_o viii_o first_o some_o object_n that_o christ_n who_o have_v the_o spirit_n above_o measure_n be_v notwithstanding_o baptize_v with_o water_n as_o nic._n arnold_n against_o this_o these_o 2.34_o john_n 2.34_o sect._n 46_o of_o his_o theological_a exercitation_n answ._n
to_o be_v understand_v spiritual_o can_v only_o partake_v of_o flesh_n as_o spirit_n of_o spirit_n as_o the_o body_n can_v feed_v upon_o spirit_n neither_o can_v the_o spirit_n feed_v upon_o flesh._n and_o that_o the_o flesh_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v spiritual_o understand_v appear_v further_a in_o that_o that_o which_o feed_v upon_o it_o shall_v never_o die_v but_o the_o body_n of_o all_o man_n once_o die_v yea_o it_o behove_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n himself_o to_o die_v that_o this_o body_n and_o spiritual_a flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o that_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a seed_n before_o speak_v of_o by_o we_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o nature_n and_o fruit_n of_o it_o first_o it_o be_v say_v it_o be_v that_o which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o give_v life_n unto_o the_o world_n now_o this_o answer_n to_o that_o light_n and_o seed_n which_o be_v testify_v of_o joh._n 1._o to_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o life_n of_o man_n soul_n the_o spiritual_a light_n and_o seed_n be_v as_o bread_n to_o the_o hungry_a soul_n for_o that_o spiritual_a light_n and_o seed_n as_o it_o receive_v place_n in_o man_n heart_n and_o room_n to_o spring_v up_o there_o be_v as_o bread_n to_o the_o hungry_a and_o faint_a soul_n that_o be_v as_o it_o be_v bury_v and_o dead_a in_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o world_n which_o receive_v life_n again_o and_o revive_v as_o it_o taste_v and_o partake_v of_o this_o heavenly_a bread_n and_o they_o that_o partake_v of_o it_o be_v say_v to_o come_v to_o christ_n neither_o can_v any_o have_v it_o but_o by_o come_v to_o he_o and_o believe_v in_o the_o appearance_n of_o his_o light_n in_o their_o heart_n by_o receive_v which_o and_o believe_v in_o it_o the_o participation_n of_o this_o body_n and_o bread_n be_v know_v and_o that_o christ_n understand_v the_o same_o thing_n here_o by_o his_o body_n flesh_n and_o blood_n which_o be_v understand_v joh._n 1._o by_o the_o light_n enlighten_v every_o man_n and_o the_o life_n etc._n etc._n appear_v for_o the_o light_n and_o life_n speak_v of_o joh._n 1._o be_v say_v to_o be_v christ_n he_o be_v the_o true_a light_n and_o the_o bread_n and_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n speak_v of_o in_o this_o 6_o of_o john_n be_v call_v christ_n i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n say_v he_o again_o they_o that_o receive_v that_o light_n and_o life_n john_n 1.12_o obtain_v power_n to_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n so_o also_o here_o joh._n 6.35_o he_o that_o come_v unto_o this_o bread_n of_o life_n shall_v not_o hunger_n and_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o who_o be_v this_o bread_n shall_v never_o thirst._n so_o then_o distinguish_v christ_n outward_a and_o spiritual_a body_n distinguish_v as_o there_o be_v the_o outward_a visible_a body_n and_o temple_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o take_v its_o origin_n from_o the_o virgin_n mary_n so_o there_o be_v also_o the_o spiritual_a body_n of_o christ_n by_o and_o through_o which_o he_o that_o be_v the_o word_n in_o the_o begin_n with_o god_n and_o be_v and_o be_v god_n do_v reveal_v himself_o to_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o all_o age_n and_o whereby_o man_n in_o all_o age_n come_v to_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o to_o have_v communion_n and_o fellowship_n with_o god_n and_o christ._n of_o which_o body_n of_o christ_n christ._n the_o patriarch_n do_v eat_v of_o the_o body_n and_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n and_o flesh_n and_o blood_n if_o both_o adam_n and_o seth_n and_o enoch_n and_o noah_n and_o abraham_n and_o moses_n and_o david_n and_o all_o the_o prophet_n and_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n have_v not_o eat_v they_o have_v not_o have_v life_n in_o they_o nor_o can_v their_o inward_a man_n have_v be_v nourish_v now_o as_o the_o outward_a body_n and_o temple_n be_v call_v christ_n so_o be_v also_o this_o spiritual_a body_n no_o less_o proper_o and_o that_o long_a before_o that_o outward_a body_n be_v in_o be_v hence_o the_o apostle_n say_v 1_o cor._n 10.3_o 4_o that_o the_o father_n do_v all_o eat_v the_o same_o spiritual_a meat_n and_o do_v all_o drink_n the_o same_o spiritual_a drink_n for_o they_o drink_v of_o that_o spiritual_a rock_n that_o follow_v they_o and_o that_o rock_n be_v christ._n this_o can_v be_v understand_v otherwise_o than_o of_o this_o spiritual_a body_n of_o christ_n which_o spiritual_a body_n of_o christ_n though_o it_o be_v the_o save_a food_n of_o the_o righteous_a both_o before_o the_o law_n and_o under_o the_o law_n yet_o under_o the_o law_n it_o be_v veil_v and_o shadow_v and_o cover_v under_o divers_a type_n ceremony_n and_o observation_n yea_o and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o it_o be_v veil_v and_o hide_v in_o some_o respect_n under_o the_o outward_a temple_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n or_o during_o the_o continuance_n of_o it_o so_o that_o the_o jew_n can_v not_o understand_v christ_n preach_v about_o it_o while_o on_o earth_n and_o not_o the_o jew_n only_o but_o many_o of_o his_o disciple_n judge_v it_o a_o hard_a say_n murmur_v at_o it_o and_o many_o from_o that_o time_n go_v back_o from_o he_o and_o walk_v no_o more_o with_o he_o 66._o joh._n 6.60_o 66._o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o there_o be_v many_o also_o at_o this_o day_n profess_v to_o be_v disciple_n of_o christ_n that_o do_v as_o little_a understand_v this_o matter_n as_o those_o do_v and_o be_v as_o apt_a to_o be_v offend_v and_o stumble_v at_o it_o while_o they_o be_v gaze_v and_o follow_v after_o the_o outward_a body_n and_o look_v not_o to_o that_o by_o which_o the_o saint_n be_v daily_o feed_v and_o nourish_v for_o as_o jesus_n christ_n in_o obedience_n to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o father_n do_v by_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n offer_v up_o that_o body_n for_o a_o propitiation_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o finish_v his_o testimony_n upon_o earth_n thereby_o in_o a_o most_o perfect_a example_n of_o patience_n resignation_n and_o holiness_n that_o all_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n so_o have_v he_o likewise_o pour_v forth_o into_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n a_o measure_n of_o that_o divine_a light_n and_o seed_n body_n the_o divine_a light_n of_o christ_n do_v make_v the_o saint_n partaker_n of_o his_o body_n wherewith_o he_o be_v clothe_v that_o thereby_o reach_v unto_o the_o conscience_n of_o all_o he_o may_v raise_v they_o up_o out_o of_o death_n and_o darkness_n by_o his_o life_n and_o light_n and_o they_o thereby_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o body_n and_o therethrough_a come_v to_o have_v fellowship_n with_o the_o father_n and_o with_o the_o son_n quest._n §_o iii_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v how_o and_o after_o what_o manner_n man_n come_v to_o partake_v of_o it_o and_o to_o be_v feed_v by_o it_o answ._n i_o answer_v in_o the_o plain_a and_o express_v word_n of_o christ_n i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n say_v he_o he_o that_o come_v to_o i_o shall_v never_o hunger_n he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o shall_v never_o thirst_v 55._o joh._n 6.35_o &_o 55._o and_o again_o for_o my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n indeed_o and_o my_o blood_n be_v drink_v indeed_o so_o whosoever_o thou_o be_v that_o ask_v this_o question_n or_o read_v these_o line_n whether_o thou_o account_v thyself_o a_o believer_n or_o real_o feel_v by_o a_o certain_a and_o sad_a experience_n that_o thou_o be_v yet_o in_o the_o unbelief_n and_o find_v that_o the_o outward_a body_n and_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o far_o from_o thou_o that_o thou_o can_v not_o reach_v it_o nor_o feed_v upon_o it_o yea_o though_o thou_o have_v often_o swallow_v down_o and_o taken-in_a that_o which_o the_o papist_n have_v persuade_v thou_o to_o be_v the_o real_a flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n call_v the_o lutheran_n and_o calvinian_o opinion_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o supper_n so_o call_v and_o have_v believe_v it_o to_o be_v so_o though_o all_o thy_o sense_n tell_v thou_o the_o contrary_a or_o be_v a_o lutheran_n have_v take_v that_o bread_n in_o and_o with_o and_o under_o which_o the_o lutheran_n have_v assure_v thou_o that_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v or_o be_v a_o calvinist_n have_v partake_v of_o that_o which_o the_o calvinist_n say_v though_o a_o figure_n only_o of_o the_o body_n give_v they_o that_o take_v it_o a_o real_a participation_n of_o the_o body_n flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n though_o they_o neither_o know_v how_o nor_o what_o way_n i_o say_v if_o for_o all_o this_o thou_o find_v thy_o soul_n yet_o barren_a yea_o hungry_a and_o ready_a to_o starve_v for_o want_v of_o something_o thou_o long_v for_o know_v that_o that_o light_n that_o discover_v thy_o
be_v not_o change_v yet_o the_o body_n be_v there_o etc._n etc._n and_o indeed_o commend_v calvin_n ingenuous_a confession_n commend_v i_o be_o inclinable_a very_o favourable_o to_o judge_n of_o calvin_n in_o this_o particular_a in_o that_o he_o deal_v so_o ingenuous_o to_o confess_v he_o neither_o comprehend_v nor_o can_v express_v it_o in_o word_n but_o yet_o by_o a_o feel_a experience_n can_v say_v the_o lord_n be_v spiritual_o present_a now_o as_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o calvin_n sometime_o have_v a_o sense_n of_o this_o presence_n without_o the_o use_n of_o this_o ceremony_n so_o as_o the_o understanding_n give_v he_o of_o god_n make_v he_o just_o reject_v the_o false_a notion_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o consubstantiation_n though_o he_o know_v not_o what_o to_o establish_v instead_o of_o they_o if_o he_o have_v full_o wait_v in_o that_o light_n 5.13_o eph._n 5.13_o that_o make_v all_o thing_n manifest_v and_o have_v not_o labour_v in_o his_o own_o comprehension_n to_o settle_v upon_o that_o external_n ceremony_n by_o affix_v the_o spiritual_a presence_n as_o chief_o or_o principal_o though_o not_o only_o as_o he_o well_o know_v by_o experience_n there_o or_o especial_o to_o relate_v to_o it_o he_o may_v have_v reach_v further_o unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o this_o mystery_n than_o many_o that_o go_v before_o he_o §_o xi_o last_o if_o any_o now_o at_o this_o day_n from_o a_o true_a tenderness_n of_o spirit_n wink_v in_o tenderness_n of_o conscience_n at_o ignorance_n god_n wink_v and_o with_o real_a conscience_n towards_o god_n do_v practice_v this_o ceremony_n in_o the_o same_o way_n method_n and_o manner_n as_o do_v the_o primitive_a christian_n record_v in_o scripture_n which_o yet_o none_o that_o i_o know_v now_o do_v i_o shall_v not_o doubt_v to_o affirm_v but_o they_o may_v be_v indulge_v in_o it_o and_o the_o lord_n may_v regard_v they_o and_o for_o a_o season_n appear_v to_o they_o in_o the_o use_n of_o these_o thing_n as_o many_o of_o we_o have_v know_v he_o to_o do_v to_o we_o in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o ignorance_n provide_v always_o they_o do_v not_o seek_v to_o obtrude_v they_o upon_o other_o nor_o judge_v such_o as_o find_v themselves_o deliver_v or_o that_o they_o do_v not_o pertinacious_o adhere_v to_o they_o for_o we_o certain_o know_v that_o the_o day_n be_v dawn_v in_o which_o god_n have_v arisen_a and_o have_v dismiss_v all_o those_o ceremony_n and_o rite_n spirit_n the_o day_n be_v daw_v that_o god_n be_v rise_v and_o worship_v in_o spirit_n and_o be_v only_o to_o be_v worship_v in_o spirit_n and_o that_o he_o appear_v to_o they_o who_o wait_v upon_o he_o and_o that_o to_o seek_v god_n in_o these_o thing_n be_v with_o marry_o at_o the_o sepulchre_n to_o seek_v the_o live_n among_o the_o dead_a for_o we_o know_v that_o he_o be_v arisen_n and_o reveal_v in_o spirit_n lead_v his_o child_n out_o of_o these_o rudiment_n that_o they_o may_v walk_v with_o he_o in_o his_o light_n to_o who_o be_v glory_n for_o ever_o amen_n proposition_n fourteen_o concern_v the_o power_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n in_o matter_n pure_o religious_a and_o pertain_v to_o the_o conscience_n since_o god_n have_v assume_v to_o himself_o the_o power_n and_o dominion_n of_o the_o conscience_n who_o alone_o can_v right_o instruct_v and_o govern_v it_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o any_o whosoever_o by_o virtue_n of_o any_o authority_n or_o principality_n they_o bear_v in_o the_o government_n of_o this_o world_n 3.10_o luke_n 9.55_o 56._o matth._n 7.12_o 13_o 29._o tit._n 3.10_o to_o force_v the_o conscience_n of_o other_o and_o therefore_o all_o kill_v banish_v fine_v imprison_v and_o other_o such_o thing_n which_o be_v inflict_v upon_o man_n for_o the_o alone_a exercise_n of_o their_o conscience_n or_o difference_n in_o worship_n or_o opinion_n proceed_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o cain_n the_o murderer_n and_o be_v contrary_n to_o the_o truth_n provide_v always_o that_o no_o man_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o conscience_n prejudice_n his_o neighbour_n in_o his_o life_n or_o estate_n or_o do_v any_o thing_n destructive_a to_o or_o inconsistent_a with_o human_a society_n in_o which_o case_n the_o law_n be_v for_o the_o transgressor_n and_o justice_n be_v to_o be_v administer_v upon_o all_o without_o respect_n of_o person_n §_o i._o liberty_n of_o conscience_n from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n have_v be_v of_o late_a year_n so_o large_o and_o learned_o handle_v that_o i_o shall_v not_o need_v but_o to_o be_v brief_a in_o it_o yet_o it_o be_v to_o be_v lament_v that_o few_o have_v walk_v answerable_a to_o this_o principle_n each_o plead_n it_o for_o themselves_o but_o scarce_o allow_v it_o to_o other_o as_o hereafter_o i_o shall_v have_v occasion_n more_o at_o length_n to_o observe_v it_o will_v be_v fit_a in_o the_o first_o place_n for_o clear_v of_o mistake_v to_o say_v something_o of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n that_o what_o follow_v may_v be_v the_o more_o clear_o understand_v by_o conscience_n then_o as_o in_o the_o explanation_n of_o the_o five_o and_o six_o proposition_n i_o have_v observe_v be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o persuasion_n of_o the_o mind_n which_o arise_v from_o the_o vnderstanding_n be_v possess_v with_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o truth_n or_o falsity_n of_o any_o thing_n which_o though_o it_o may_v be_v false_a or_o evil_a upon_o the_o matter_n yet_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v go_v against_o his_o persuasion_n or_o conscience_n he_o shall_v commit_v a_o sin_n because_o what_o a_o man_n do_v contrary_a to_o his_o faith_n though_o his_o faith_n be_v wrong_a be_v no_o way_n acceptable_a to_o god_n hence_o the_o apostle_n say_v whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n and_o he_o that_o doubt_v 14.23_o rom._n 14.23_o be_v damn_v if_o he_o eat_v though_o the_o thing_n may_v have_v be_v lawful_a to_o another_o and_o that_o this_o doubt_v to_o eat_v some_o kind_n of_o meat_n since_o all_o the_o creature_n of_o god_n be_v good_a and_o for_o the_o use_v of_o man_n if_o receive_v with_o thanksgiving_n may_v be_v a_o superstition_n or_o at_o least_o a_o weakness_n which_o be_v better_o remove_v hence_o ames_n de_fw-fr cas._n cons._n say_v the_o conscience_n although_o err_v do_v evermore_o bind_v so_o as_o that_o he_o sin_v who_o do_v contrary_a to_o his_o conscience_n because_o he_o do_v contrary_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n although_o not_o material_o and_o true_o yet_o formal_o and_o interpretative_o so_o the_o question_n be_v first_o whether_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n have_v power_n to_o force_v man_n in_o thing_n religious_a to_o do_v contrary_a to_o their_o conscience_n and_o if_o they_o will_v not_o to_o punish_v they_o in_o their_o good_n liberty_n or_o life_n this_o we_o hold_v in_o the_o negative_a but_o second_o as_o we_o will_v have_v the_o magistrate_n avoid_v this_o extreme_a of_o encroach_a upon_o man_n conscience_n so_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n we_o be_v far_o from_o join_v with_o or_o strengthen_v such_o libertine_n as_o will_v stretch_v the_o liberty_n of_o their_o conscience_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o their_o neighbour_n or_o to_o the_o ruin_n of_o human_a society_n we_o understand_v therefore_o by_o matter_n of_o conscience_n such_o as_o immediate_o relate_v betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n or_o man_n and_o man_n that_o be_v under_o the_o same_o persuasion_n as_o to_o meet_v together_o and_o worship_n god_n in_o that_o way_n which_o they_o judge_v be_v most_o acceptable_a unto_o he_o and_o not_o to_o encroach_v upon_o or_o seek_v to_o force_v their_o neighbour_n otherwise_o than_o by_o reason_n or_o such_o other_o mean_n as_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n use_v viz._n preach_v and_o instruct_v such_o as_o will_v hear_v and_o receive_v it_o but_o not_o at_o all_o for_o man_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o conscience_n to_o do_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o moral_a and_o perpetual_a statute_n general_o acknowledge_v by_o all_o christian_n in_o which_o case_n the_o magistrate_n may_v very_o lawful_o use_v his_o authority_n as_o on_o those_o who_o under_o a_o pretext_n of_o conscience_n make_v it_o a_o principle_n to_o kill_v and_o destroy_v all_o the_o wicked_a id_fw-la est_fw-la all_o that_o differ_v from_o they_o that_o they_o to_o wit_n the_o saint_n may_v rule_v and_o that_o therefore_o seek_v to_o make_v all_o thing_n common_a and_o will_v force_v their_o neighbour_n to_o share_v their_o estate_n with_o they_o and_o many_o such_o wild_a notion_n as_o be_v report_a of_o the_o anabaptist_n of_o munster_n which_o evident_o appear_v to_o proceed_v from_o pride_n and_o covetousness_n and_o not_o from_o purity_n or_o conscience_n and_o therefore_o i_o have_v sufficient_o guard_v against_o that_o in_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o proposition_n but_o the_o liberty_n we_o lay_v claim_v to_o be_v such_o as_o the_o
head_n be_v that_o which_o god_n require_v of_o we_o in_o our_o worship_v of_o he_o 1_o cor._n 11._o but_o if_o we_o make_v our_o address_n to_o man_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n where_o lie_v the_o difference_n not_o in_o the_o outward_a signification_n but_o mere_o in_o the_o intention_n which_o open_v a_o door_n for_o the_o popish_a veneration_n of_o image_n which_o hereby_o be_v necessary_o exclude_v second_o man_n be_v alike_o by_o creation_n though_o their_o be_v state_v under_o their_o several_a relation_n require_v from_o they_o mutual_a service_n according_a to_o those_o respective_a relation_n owe_v not_o worship_n to_o one_o another_o but_o all_o equal_o be_v to_o return_v it_o to_o god_n because_o it_o be_v to_o he_o and_o his_o name_n alone_o that_o every_o knee_n must_v bow_v and_o before_o who_o throne_n the_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n prostrate_v themselves_o therefore_o for_o man_n to_o take_v this_o one_o from_o another_o be_v to_o rob_v god_n of_o his_o glory_n since_o all_o the_o duty_n of_o relation_n may_v be_v perform_v one_o to_o another_o without_o these_o kind_n of_o bowing_n which_o therefore_o be_v no_o essential_a part_n of_o our_o duty_n to_o man_n but_o to_o god_n all_o man_n by_o a_o inward_a instinct_n in_o all_o nation_n have_v be_v lead_v to_o prostrate_v and_o bow_v themselves_o too_o god_n and_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o this_o bow_n to_o man_n take_v place_n from_o a_o slavish_a fear_n possess_v some_o which_o lead_v they_o to_o set_v up_o other_o as_o god_n when_o also_o a_o ambitious_a proud_a spirit_n get_v up_o in_o those_o other_o to_o usurp_v the_o place_n of_o god_n over_o their_o brethren_n three_o we_o see_v that_o peter_n refuse_v it_o from_o cornelius_n say_v he_o be_v a_o man_n be_v then_o the_o pope_n more_o or_o more_o excellent_a than_o peter_n who_o suffer_v man_n daily_o to_o fall_v down_o at_o their_o foot_n and_o kiss_v they_o bow_v peter_n and_o the_o angel_n refuse_v bow_v this_o reproof_n of_o peter_n to_o cornelius_n do_v abundant_o show_v that_o such_o manner_n be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v among_o christian_n yea_o we_o see_v that_o the_o angel_n twice_o refuse_v this_o kind_n of_o bow_v from_o john_n rev._n 19.10.22.9_o for_o this_o reason_n because_o i_o be_o thy_o fellow-servant_n and_o of_o thy_o brethren_n abundant_o intimate_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o fellow-servant_n thus_o to_o prostrate_v themselves_o one_o to_o another_o and_o in_o this_o respect_n all_o man_n be_v fellow-servant_n object_n object_n if_o it_o be_v say_v john_n intend_v here_o a_o religious_a worship_n and_o not_o a_o civil_a i_o answer_v that_o be_v to_o say_v not_o to_o prove_v neither_o can_v we_o suppose_v john_n at_o that_o time_n of_o the_o day_n so_o ill_o instruct_v answ._n as_o not_o to_o know_v it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o worship_v angel_n only_o it_o shall_v seem_v because_o of_o these_o great_a and_o mysterious_a thing_n reveal_v to_o he_o by_o that_o angel_n he_o be_v willing_a to_o signify_v some_o more_o than_o ordinary_a testimony_n of_o respect_n for_o which_o he_o be_v reprove_v these_o thing_n be_v thus_o consider_v it_o be_v remit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o such_o as_o be_v desirous_a to_o be_v find_v christian_n indeed_o whether_o we_o be_v find_v worthy_a of_o blame_n for_o wave_v it_o to_o man_n rudeness_n to_o forbear_v bow_v to_o man_n be_v no_o uncivility_n nor_o pride_n nor_o rudeness_n let_v those_o then_o that_o will_v blame_v we_o consider_v whether_o they_o may_v not_o as_o well_o accuse_v mordecai_n of_o vncivility_n who_o be_v no_o less_o singular_a than_o we_o in_o this_o matter_n and_o forasmuch_o as_o they_o accuse_v we_o herein_o of_o rudeness_n and_o pride_n though_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o conscience_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n be_v a_o sufficient_a guard_n against_o such_o calumny_n yet_o there_o be_v of_o we_o know_v to_o be_v man_n of_o such_o education_n as_o forbear_v not_o these_o thing_n for_o want_n of_o that_o they_o call_v good_a breed_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v very_o void_a of_o reason_n to_o purchase_v that_o pride_n at_o so_o dear_a a_o rate_n as_o many_o have_v do_v the_o exercise_n of_o their_o conscience_n in_o this_o matter_n many_o of_o we_o have_v be_v sore_o beat_v and_o buffet_v yea_o and_o several_a month_n imprison_v for_o no_o other_o reason_n but_o because_o we_o can_v not_o so_o satisfy_v the_o proud_a unreasonable_a humour_n of_o proud_a man_n as_o to_o uncover_v our_o head_n and_o bow_v our_o body_n nor_o do_v our_o innocent_a practice_n in_o stand_v still_o though_o upright_o not_o put_v off_o our_o hat_n any_o more_o than_o our_o shoe_n the_o one_o be_v the_o cover_n of_o our_o head_n as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o of_o our_o foot_n show_v so_o much_o rudeness_n as_o their_o beat_n or_o knock_v we_o etc._n etc._n because_o we_o can_v bow_v to_o they_o contrary_a to_o our_o conscience_n which_o certain_o show_v less_o meekness_n and_o humility_n upon_o their_o part_n than_o it_o do_v of_o rudeness_n or_o pride_n upon_o we_o now_o suppose_v it_o be_v our_o weakness_n and_o we_o real_o under_o a_o mistake_n in_o this_o thing_n since_o it_o be_v not_o allege_v to_o be_v the_o breach_n of_o any_o christian_a precept_n be_v we_o not_o to_o be_v indulge_v as_o the_o apostle_n command_v shall_v be_v do_v to_o such_o as_o scruple_v to_o eat_v flesh_n and_o do_v not_o persecute_v we_o and_o revile_v we_o upon_o this_o account_n show_v they_o to_o be_v more_o like_a unto_o proud_a haman_n than_o the_o disciple_n or_o follower_n of_o the_o meek_a self-denying_a jesus_n and_o this_o i_o can_v say_v bold_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n from_o my_o own_o experience_n and_o that_o of_o many_o thousand_o more_o that_o however_o small_a or_o foolish_a this_o may_v seem_v yet_o we_o behove_v to_o choose_v death_n rather_o than_o do_v it_o and_o that_o for_o conscience_n sake_n and_o that_o in_o its_o be_v so_o contrary_a to_o our_o natural_a spirit_n there_o be_v many_o of_o we_o to_o who_o the_o forsake_v of_o these_o bowing_n and_o ceremony_n be_v as_o death_n itself_o which_o we_o can_v never_o have_v leave_v if_o we_o can_v have_v enjoy_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n in_o the_o use_n of_o they_o though_o it_o be_v far_o from_o we_o to_o judge_v all_o those_o to_o who_o god_n have_v not_o show_v the_o evil_a of_o they_o under_o the_o like_a hazard_n yet_o nevertheless_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o to_o such_o as_o will_v prove_v faithful_a witness_n to_o christ_n divine_a light_n in_o their_o conscience_n god_n will_v also_o show_v the_o evil_a of_o these_o thing_n §_o vii_o the_o three_o thing_n to_o be_v treat_v of_o dissallow_v apparel_n in_o its_o vanity_n and_o superfluity_n dissallow_v be_v the_o vanity_n and_o superfluity_n of_o apparel_n in_o which_o first_o two_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o person_n and_o the_o country_n he_o live_v in_o we_o shall_v not_o say_v that_o all_o person_n be_v to_o be_v clothe_v alike_o because_o it_o will_v perhaps_o neither_o suit_v their_o body_n nor_o their_o estate_n and_o if_o a_o man_n be_v clothe_v sober_o and_o without_o superfluity_n though_o they_o may_v be_v fine_a than_o that_o which_o his_o servant_n be_v clothe_v with_o we_o shall_v not_o blame_v he_o for_o it_o the_o abstain_v from_o superfluity_n which_o his_o condition_n and_o education_n have_v accustom_v he_o to_o may_v be_v in_o he_o a_o great_a act_n of_o mortification_n than_o the_o abstain_v from_o fine_a clothes_n in_o the_o servant_n who_o never_o be_v accustom_v to_o they_o as_o to_o the_o country_n what_o it_o natural_o produce_v may_v be_v no_o vanity_n to_o the_o inhabitant_n to_o use_v or_o what_o be_v common_o impart_v to_o they_o by_o way_n of_o exchange_n see_v it_o be_v without_o doubt_n that_o the_o creation_n be_v for_o the_o use_n of_o man_n so_o where_o silk_n abound_v it_o may_v be_v wear_v as_o well_o as_o wool_n and_o be_v we_o in_o those_o country_n or_o near_o unto_o they_o where_o gold_n or_o silver_n be_v as_o common_a as_o iron_n or_o brass_n the_o one_o may_v be_v use_v as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o the_o iniquity_n lie_v then_o here_o first_o when_o from_o a_o lust_n of_o vanity_n and_o desire_v to_o adorn_v themselves_o man_n and_o woman_n not_o content_a with_o what_o their_o condition_n can_v bear_v or_o their_o country_n easy_o afford_v do_v stretch_v to_o have_v thing_n that_o from_o their_o rarity_n and_o the_o price_n that_o be_v put_v upon_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v precious_a and_o so_o feed_v their_o lust_n the_o more_o and_o this_o all_o sober_a man_n of_o all_o sort_n will_v ready_o grant_v to_o be_v evil._n second_o when_o man_n be_v not_o content_a to_o make_v a_o true_a use_n
master_n jo._n m._n will_v not_o assign_v the_o jesuit_n a_o ground_n to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o therefore_o say_v they_o r._n b_o '_o s._n practice_n agree_v exact_o with_o the_o jesuit_n moral_n and_o give_v a_o egregious_a specimen_fw-la of_o his_o jesuitical_a honesty_n which_o make_v we_o suspect_v he_o to_o be_v a_o jesuited_a emissary_n this_o be_v a_o false_a calumny_n disprove_v by_o their_o own_o account_n where_o pag._n 8._o upon_o this_o occasion_n they_o confess_v r._n b._n say_v only_o that_o their_o master_n desire_v the_o jesuit_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o protestant_a religion_n have_v no_o ground_n for_o it_o will_v they_o deny_v this_o let_v they_o read_v the_o very_a first_fw-mi four_o line_n of_o their_o master_n first_o answer_n to_o the_o jesuit_n paper_n pag._n 3._o and_o they_o will_v find_v he_o put_v the_o jesuit_n to_o prove_v his_o minor_a which_o be_v that_o the_o protestant_a religion_n have_v no_o such_o ground_n as_o it_o do_v not_o therefore_o follow_v that_o i._o m._n assign_v not_o afterward_o a_o ground_n so_o neither_o will_n r._n b._n his_o repeat_v this_o infer_v that_o he_o say_v he_o do_v not_o assign_v such_o a_o ground_n yea_o in_o contradiction_n to_o themselves_o pag._n 60._o they_o acknowledge_v he_o tell_v their_o master_n name_v the_o scripture_n as_o a_o ground_n etc._n etc._n so_o it_o be_v manifest_a they_o have_v give_v here_o a_o specimen_fw-la of_o their_o jesuitical_a honesty_n and_o because_o they_o can_v not_o answer_v they_o forge_v lie_n to_o fill_v up_o the_o paper_n and_o thing_n not_o to_o the_o purpose_n as_o pag._n 57_o where_o offering_n to_o reply_v to_o this_o retortion_n they_o say_v but_o for_o answer_n it_o be_v well_o know_v r._n b._n be_v bring_v up_o in_o a_o popish_a college_n and_o it_o be_v think_v by_o many_o that_o he_o be_v a_o jesuited_a emissary_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o this_o a_o pungent_a answer_n reader_n r._n b._n be_v educate_v in_o a_o popish_a college_n answer_v the_o objection_n about_o r._n b_n education_n answer_v ergo_fw-la say_v the_o student_n our_o answer_n be_v not_o that_o which_o the_o jesuit_n use_v against_o our_o master_n it_o seem_v the_o student_n be_v offend_v that_o r._n b._n have_v forsake_v popery_n or_o otherwise_o their_o charge_v he_o with_o his_o education_n must_v be_v very_o impertinent_a as_o indeed_o it_o be_v no_o less_o foolish_a than_o if_o we_o shall_v upbraid_v luther_n calvin_n and_o all_o the_o first_o reformer_n as_o papist_n for_o be_v so_o educate_v and_o though_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n their_o folly_n and_o malice_n lead_v they_o into_o this_o impertinency_n yet_o it_o may_v have_v be_v expect_v that_o their_o gratitude_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o edinburgh_n who_o be_v please_v to_o permit_v their_o book_n to_o be_v print_v may_v have_v hinder_v they_o from_o this_o folly_n see_v he_o be_v educate_v in_o the_o same_o popish_a college_n r._n b._n be_v and_o owe_v some_o of_o his_o philosophy_n to_o it_o whereas_o r._n b_o learned_a only_a there_o a_o little_a grammar_n and_o come_v thence_o in_o his_o 15_o year_n but_o the_o bishop_n be_v there_o profess_v popery_n in_o his_o more_o mature_a age._n so_o if_o this_o reflect_v any_o thing_n upon_o r._n b._n it_o will_v much_o more_o against_o the_o bishop_n which_o they_o will_v do_v well_o to_o clear_v and_o be_v sure_a not_o to_o omit_v when_o they_o write_v next_o or_o else_o acknowledge_v their_o impertinency_n herein_o it_o seem_v they_o want_v strength_n of_o reason_n to_o evite_v the_o retortion_n which_o make_v they_o thus_o rove_v offer_v also_o to_o prove_v that_o their_o master_n do_v assign_v a_o ground_n which_o be_v never_o deny_v and_o that_o he_o be_v defendant_n so_o be_v r._n b._n also_o what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o purpose_n unless_o to_o make_v the_o retortion_n the_o strong_a and_o show_v they_o can_v get_v by_o it_o but_o pag._n 60._o they_o say_v that_o whereas_o the_o jesuit_n press_v their_o master_n that_o heretic_n do_v say_v their_o religion_n be_v conform_v to_o the_o scripture_n as_o well_o as_o he_o and_o so_o the_o scripture_n be_v no_o peculiar_a ground_n for_o he_o more_o than_o for_o heretic_n they_o say_v their_o master_n answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o pretend_a but_o real_a conformity_n unto_o the_o scripture_n that_o demonstrate_v a_o true_a religion_n etc._n etc._n and_o upon_o this_o they_o inquire_v what_o follow_v allege_v they_o argue_v from_o be_v as_o good_a and_o not_o pretend_v and_o so_o fall_v a_o rail_n say_v that_o the_o light_n of_o our_o conscience_n be_v eclipse_v by_o a_o new-found_a light_n and_o that_o we_o misrepresent_v they_o malicious_o this_o rail_a be_v for_o want_v of_o better_a reason_v but_o see_v they_o be_v so_o blind_a as_o not_o to_o see_v whether_o they_o will_v see_v it_o or_o not_o we_o shall_v tell_v they_o and_o we_o hope_v let_v the_o reader_n see_v what_o follow_v here_o from_o jo._n menzies_n the_o student_n master_n who_o say_v to_o the_o jesuit_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o heretic_n say_v the_o scripture_n be_v a_o ground_n for_o their_o religion_n unless_o it_o real_o be_v so_o and_o that_o other_o heretic_n say_v so_o do_v not_o infer_v that_o it_o be_v as_o little_a a_o ground_n for_o his_o own_o to_o wit_n j._n m_n religion_n very_o well_o the_o quaker_n tell_v the_o student_n that_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o heretic_n declare_v they_o have_v the_o spirit_n unless_o it_o be_v real_o so_o and_o their_o say_n they_o have_v it_o while_o they_o have_v it_o not_o do_v not_o infer_v that_o our_o say_n we_o have_v it_o be_v as_o little_a a_o ground_n for_o we_o who_o but_o such_o as_o be_v as_o childish_a as_o the_o student_n will_v affirm_v there_o be_v here_o any_o difference_n but_o further_a they_o confound_v most_o ignorant_o the_o internal_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n with_o the_o declaration_n of_o have_v the_o spirit_n which_o be_v two_o different_a thing_n it_o be_v incumbent_n upon_o they_o to_o have_v prove_v it_o the_o internal_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v above_o the_o pretence_n of_o heretic_n unto_o it_o that_o the_o internal_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v as_o good_a a_o evidence_n for_o heretic_n as_o for_o we_o which_o they_o have_v not_o offer_v to_o do_v next_o they_o have_v not_o prove_v that_o the_o declaration_n of_o heretic_n be_v as_o good_a as_o we_o neither_o can_v they_o unless_o they_o can_v prove_v we_o to_o be_v false_a which_o they_o neither_o have_v nor_o can_v do_v but_o they_o have_v egregious_o fall_v in_o that_o inconveniency_n they_o will_v fix_v upon_o we_o pag._n 58.59_o where_o in_o answer_v r._n b_n retortion_n show_v they_o that_o if_o man_n be_v deceive_v contradict_v themselves_o or_o one_o another_o who_o say_v the_o spirit_n be_v the_o rule_n do_v infer_v the_o spirit_n not_o to_o be_v a_o certain_a rule_n then_o man_n be_v deceive_v contradict_v themselves_o and_o one_o another_o who_o say_v the_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n will_v the_o same_o way_n infer_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o rule_n here_o they_o be_v miserable_o put_v to_o it_o and_o therefore_o not_o ashamed_a to_o deny_v that_o they_o plead_v not_o against_o the_o spirit_n be_v be_v a_o rule_n for_o these_o cause_n the_o contrary_a for_o which_o be_v know_v to_o all_o that_o be_v acquaint_v with_o these_o controversy_n and_o for_o example_n let_v they_o read_v their_o so_o much_o applaud_v w._n mitchell_n his_o dialogue_n and_o his_o sober_a answer_n so_o call_v where_o he_o make_v this_o the_o chief_a cause_n yea_o themselves_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n within_o two_o page_n to_o wit_n pag._n 60._o and_o 61._o plead_v against_o the_o teach_v of_o the_o spirit_n affirm_v that_o too_o that_o but_o beside_o will_v not_o their_o master_n answer_n above_o mention_v meet_v well_o with_o they_o here_o that_o since_o these_o sect_n and_o saint_n do_v as_o both_o they_o and_o the_o quaker_n confess_v but_o pretend_v to_o the_o spirit_n that_o because_o they_o do_v but_o pretend_v therefore_o the_o quaker_n do_v but_o pretend_v also_o no_o more_o than_o because_o some_o heretic_n do_v pretend_v their_o religion_n be_v conform_v to_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o i._n m._n do_v so_o too_o because_o the_o georgian_n familist_n and_o pretend_a saint_n as_o francis_n and_o loyola_n etc._n etc._n pretend_v the_o inward_a teach_v of_o the_o spirit_n and_o have_v a_o outward_a show_n of_o godliness_n therefore_o the_o spirit_n be_v teach_v to_o deny_v ungodliness_n be_v as_o good_a a_o evidence_n for_o they_o as_o for_o the_o quaker_n who_o but_o the_o student_n will_v run_v themselves_o into_o such_o miserable_a contradiction_n but_o to_o give_v the_o reader_n a_o evident_a demonstration_n of_o the_o
bring_v about_o the_o peace_n of_o christendom_n but_o this_o can_v be_v accomplish_v in_o you_o until_o you_o have_v first_o believe_v in_o the_o light_n of_o jesus_n christ_n wherewithal_o you_o as_o well_o as_o all_o man_n be_v enlighten_v and_o which_o be_v give_v you_o as_o a_o sufficient_a guide_n and_o leader_n to_o lead_v out_o of_o darkness_n to_o lead_v out_o strife_n to_o lead_v out_o of_o the_o lust_n 4.1_o jam._n 4.1_o from_o which_o the_o war_n come_v unto_o the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n and_o peace_n which_o lead_v not_o to_o destroy_v but_o to_o love_n and_o forgive_v enemy_n it_o be_v the_o mind_v of_o this_o and_o be_v lead_v and_o guide_v by_o it_o that_o only_o can_v fit_v you_o for_o so_o great_a and_o good_a a_o work_n for_o this_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o father_n love_n to_o mankind_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n 2.32_o isa._n 49.6_o luc._n 2.32_o even_o christ_n jesus_n who_o be_v give_v for_o a_o light_n to_o enlighten_v the_o gentile_n and_o for_o his_o salvation_n unto_o the_o end_v of_o the_o earth_n so_o it_o be_v by_o turn_v to_o this_o and_o follow_v it_o and_o obey_v it_o in_o which_o be_v sufficiency_n and_o which_o give_v power_n to_o the_o receiver_n of_o it_o to_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o christianity_n can_v be_v bring_v forth_o and_o restore_v and_o by_o which_o king_n and_o prince_n ruler_n and_o people_n may_v be_v bring_v out_o of_o lust_n envy_n warring_n and_o strife_n to_o true_a peace_n with_o god_n and_o one_o with_o another_o and_o therefore_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o mischief_n that_o be_v in_o christendom_n be_v because_o this_o light_n have_v not_o be_v mind_v nor_o regard_v in_o the_o heart_n but_o have_v be_v hate_v and_o overlook_v as_o a_o low_a and_o insufficient_a thing_n and_o therefore_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o kingdom_n this_o gift_n of_o the_o father_n love_n this_o little_a leaven_n this_o pearl_n of_o great_a prize_n and_o this_o talon_n be_v hide_v in_o the_o ground_n condemn_v and_o despise_a and_o the_o world_n and_o worldly_a mind_n be_v set_v over_o it_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o preach_a and_o pray_v and_o profess_v of_o christ_n in_o word_n that_o have_v be_v only_o one_o outward_a show_n and_o appearance_n by_o which_o man_n may_v the_o more_o easy_o be_v deceive_v and_o live_v more_o secure_o in_o their_o wickedness_n the_o innocent_a life_n of_o christ_n have_v not_o be_v know_v and_o all_o christendom_n have_v bring_v forth_o bitter_a and_o sour_a grape_n under_o all_o their_o talk_n and_o form_n of_o worship_n and_o not_o the_o sweet_a and_o peaceable_a fruit_n of_o righteousness_n which_o can_v never_o be_v bring_v until_o all_o come_v to_o he_o to_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n in_o their_o conscience_n to_o follow_v and_o obey_v it_o and_o acknowledge_v it_o peace_n the_o light_n of_o christ_n lead_v to_o life_n and_o to_o truth_n and_o peace_n as_o that_o which_o be_v give_v they_o of_o god_n and_o sufficient_a to_o lead_v they_o to_o life_n and_o salvation_n for_o as_o this_o be_v thus_o receive_v and_o entertain_v the_o true_a nature_n of_o christ_n will_v be_v beget_v and_o bring_v forth_o in_o people_n and_o then_o the_o contrary_a nature_n in_o which_o the_o enmity_n and_o strife_n be_v will_v die_v and_o pass_v away_o and_o so_o truth_n and_o peace_n will_v come_v to_o be_v settle_v and_o firm_o establish_v and_o for_o this_o end_v the_o lord_n god_n almighty_n be_v arisen_a and_o arise_v in_o his_o own_o power_n and_o glory_n who_o out_o of_o his_o infinite_a compassion_n have_v regard_n to_o the_o present_a distract_a and_o desolate_a condition_n of_o christendom_n as_o see_v they_o stranger_n to_o his_o life_n and_o power_n and_o lead_v and_o guide_v at_o will_n to_o the_o utter_a ruin_n and_o destruction_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n by_o the_o adversary_n of_o mankind_n true_a happiness_n that_o he_o may_v reveal_v the_o light_n of_o his_o truth_n even_o of_o true_a christianity_n to_o those_o who_o have_v the_o name_n only_o have_v turn_v many_o who_o be_v stranger_n and_o enemy_n thereunto_o in_o their_o mind_n by_o wicked_a work_n to_o this_o precious_a light_n by_o which_o judgement_n have_v be_v lay_v to_o the_o line_n 12.20_o esa._n 28.17_o mat._n 12.20_o and_o righteousness_n to_o the_o plummet_n in_o they_o and_o the_o evil_a work_n and_o nature_n in_o they_o have_v be_v judge_v and_o condemn_v and_o they_o have_v willing_o abide_v under_o it_o until_o it_o have_v be_v bring_v forth_o to_o victory_n in_o they_o and_o many_o of_o they_o who_o have_v be_v wise_a according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o world_n have_v learned_a to_o lay_v it_o down_o at_o the_o foot_n of_o jesus_n that_o they_o may_v receive_v from_o he_o of_o his_o pure_a and_o heavenly_a wisdom_n be_v content_v in_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o that_o by_o the_o world_n to_o be_v account_v fool_n and_o also_o many_o of_o they_o who_o be_v fighter_n and_o even_o renown_a for_o their_o skill_n and_o valour_n in_o warring_n have_v come_v by_o the_o influence_n of_o this_o pure_a light_n to_o beat_v their_o sword_n in_o ploughshare_n 2.4_o esa._n 2.4_o and_o their_o spear_n in_o pruning-hook_n and_o not_o learn_v carnal_a war_n any_o more_o be_v redeem_a from_o the_o lust_n from_o which_o the_o fight_a come_v and_o there_o be_v thousand_o who_o god_n have_v bring_v here_o already_o who_o see_v to_o the_o end_n of_o all_o contention_n and_o strife_n and_o that_o for_o which_o the_o world_n contend_v and_o albeit_o the_o devil_n be_v angry_a at_o they_o choose_a the_o rage_n of_o the_o devil_n against_o the_o lord_n choose_a and_o rage_n against_o they_o in_o the_o mere_a nominal_a and_o literal_a christian_n because_o he_o know_v they_o strike_v at_o the_o very_a root_n and_o foundation_n of_o his_o kingdom_n in_o man_n heart_n and_o therefore_o he_o prevail_v in_o his_o follower_n to_o wit_n in_o these_o literal_a nominal_a christian_n to_o persecute_v kill_v beat_n banish_v and_o imprison_v and_o many_o way_n vex_v they_o yet_o because_o the_o lord_n have_v choose_v they_o to_o be_v a_o first_o fruit_n of_o that_o glorious_a work_n which_o he_o be_v bring_v about_o in_o the_o nation_n therefore_o they_o hitherto_o have_v notwithstanding_o of_o all_o that_o opposition_n and_o yet_o shall_v prosper_v by_o a_o patient_n endure_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n they_o do_v and_o shall_v overcome_v and_o therefore_o there_o be_v nothing_o can_v so_o much_o tend_v to_o the_o good_a and_o universal_a peace_n of_o christendom_n than_o for_o all_o and_o every_o one_o to_o mind_v this_o gift_n of_o god_n in_o themselves_o and_o not_o only_o to_o suffer_v but_o to_o rejoice_v at_o the_o preach_a and_o promulgate_a of_o the_o universality_n of_o this_o glorious_a light_n whereunto_o god_n be_v now_o call_v many_o for_o as_o the_o resist_a and_o slay_v of_o this_o in_o themselves_o as_o well_o as_o in_o those_o who_o come_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o declare_v it_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o mischief_n that_o christendom_n labour_v under_o so_o also_o it_o be_v be_v receive_v and_o take_a place_n will_v remove_v and_o do_v it_o away_o be_v not_o therefore_o easy_o engage_v by_o the_o enemy_n to_o slight_v and_o reject_v those_o thing_n as_o foolish_a and_o weak_a and_o too_o low_a for_o you_o to_o consider_v or_o give_v place_n unto_o for_o thereby_o the_o enemy_n always_o labour_v to_o vail_v and_o darken_v the_o counsel_n of_o god_n and_o hinder_v it_o from_o be_v receive_v by_o men._n 18.40_o 1_o king_n 2.8_o luc._n 21.2_o mat._n 27.20_o job_n 18.40_o thus_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n despise_v the_o counsel_n of_o micah_n at_o the_o instigation_n of_o his_o mock_v prophet_n but_o remember_v that_o you_o profess_v to_o be_v follower_n of_o jesus_n who_o be_v load_v with_o many_o reproach_n account_v a_o disturber_n and_o to_o who_o barrabas_n a_o murderer_n be_v prefer_v by_o the_o counsel_n and_o advice_n of_o the_o wise_a rabbi_n and_o great_a professor_n among_o the_o jew_n and_o remember_v that_o you_o profess_v yourselves_o to_o be_v owner_n of_o that_o gospel_n who_o first_n and_o chief_a minister_n and_o preacher_n be_v account_v foolish_a and_o illiterate_a man_n 7._o act._n 2_o 7._o ch_z 4_o 13._o ch_z 17_o 18_o 19_o 20._o ch_z 21_o 28._o ch_z 24_o 5_o 6._o ch_z 25_o 7._o mover_n of_o sedition_n idle_a babbler_n and_o turner_n of_o the_o world_n upside_o down_o and_o therefore_o be_v not_o easy_o fright_v by_o these_o and_o such_o like_a report_n and_o reproach_n from_o hear_v those_o who_o god_n have_v call_v and_o choose_v that_o in_o and_o among_o they_o he_o may_v be_v glorify_v and_o by_o they_o may_v restore_v that_o in_o reality_n in_o the_o so_o call_v christian_n
prejudice_n against_o such_o book_n be_v because_o so_o much_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o they_o against_o my_o old_a error_n for_o i_o can_v but_o know_v say_v he_o that_o whoever_o read_v these_o must_v see_v my_o nakedness_n and_o folly_n without_o much_o study_n as_o for_o this_o imagination_n we_o must_v take_v it_o with_o much_o more_o upon_o trust_n but_o this_o help_n to_o prove_v the_o needlesness_n of_o his_o large_a examination_n ¶_o 6._o at_o his_o usual_a rate_n of_o pervert_v he_o go_v on_o to_o say_v that_o the_o account_v i_o make_v of_o all_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o world_n be_v that_o they_o be_v scribe_n and_o disputer_n of_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n but_o for_o proof_n of_o this_o we_o have_v nothing_o he_o confess_v the_o word_n to_o be_v those_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o how_o he_o prove_v that_o i_o have_v a_o different_a mean_v from_o the_o apostle_n i_o know_v not_o after_o he_o have_v commend_v his_o learned_a man_n and_o load_v the_o quaker_n with_o reproach_n he_o conclude_v this_o paragraph_n page_n 8._o with_o another_o falsehood_n and_o yet_o he_o will_v have_v it_o remark_v to_o wit_n that_o according_a to_o my_o judgement_n the_o pure_a and_o naked_a truth_n of_o god_n be_v never_o unfold_v nor_o declare_v until_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o quaker_n arise_v but_o where_o he_o find_v i_o say_v so_o he_o tell_v not_o and_o indeed_o can_v since_o such_o a_o thing_n be_v never_o assert_v by_o i_o for_o answer_v to_o my_o say_n that_o god_n have_v lay_v aside_o the_o wise_a and_o learned_a and_o make_v use_v of_o illiterate_a man_n as_o to_z letter-learning_n after_o he_o say_v it_o be_v affirm_v without_o proof_n not_o consider_v how_o improper_a it_o be_v not_o to_o expect_v any_o formal_a probation_n upon_o the_o occasion_n and_o manner_n it_o be_v deliver_v he_o give_v we_o divers_a citation_n out_o of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n warn_v against_o seducer_n all_o which_o i_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v true_a but_o the_o question_n lie_v in_o the_o right_a application_n and_o yet_o since_o albeit_o he_o believe_v they_o very_o apposite_o agree_v to_o we_o he_o think_v it_o not_o his_o present_a business_n to_o demonstrate_v it_o it_o will_v need_v no_o reply_n after_o he_o have_v proceed_v in_o his_o ten_o page_n according_a to_o his_o usual_a sort_n of_o rail_a affirm_v the_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o our_o doctrine_n and_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n he_o bring_v forth_o a_o mighty_a charge_n that_o i_o usurp_v the_o throne_n of_o god_n and_o judge_n of_o man_n heart_n and_o intention_n but_o how_o guilty_a himself_n be_v of_o that_o crime_n have_v be_v in_o part_n already_o show_v and_o will_v hereafter_o more_o appear_v but_o why_o do_v i_o so_o because_o i_o say_v the_o clergy_n have_v cloud_v the_o truth_n they_o the_o clergy_n cloud_v the_o truth_n that_o the_o people_n may_v admire_v and_o maintain_v they_o that_o the_o common_a people_n may_v maintain_v and_o admire_v they_o but_o have_v not_o protestant_n and_o that_o true_o assert_v this_o of_o the_o popish_a clergy_n and_o be_v not_o the_o thesis_n direct_v to_o such_o will_v it_o not_o then_o hold_v true_a according_a to_o his_o own_o judgement_n of_o a_o great_a yea_o the_o great_a part_n of_o those_o to_o who_o it_o be_v direct_v what_o then_o will_v become_v of_o his_o clamour_n yea_o if_o it_o be_v needful_a i_o can_v give_v instance_n of_o very_a mean_a thought_n he_o and_o his_o party_n have_v of_o many_o of_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n yea_o and_o reflection_n not_o much_o if_o any_o thing_n inferior_a to_o this_o to_o verify_v with_o how_o little_a ground_n he_o quarrel_v i_o here_o as_o for_o his_o malicious_a aspersion_n that_o there_o be_v shrewd_a presumption_n our_o stock_n lie_v at_o rome_n he_o shall_v have_v produce_v some_o of_o they_o if_o he_o can_v we_o can_v never_o yet_o obtain_v for_o this_o old_a calumny_n from_o our_o adversary_n the_o least_o probation_n and_o it_o will_v be_v find_v as_o hard_o for_o he_o to_o prove_v it_o as_o he_o may_v think_v it_o for_o such_o who_o strong_o affirm_v their_o great_a idol_n the_o covenant_n be_v contrive_v at_o rome_n and_o come_v from_o thence_o as_o for_o his_o reflection_n upon_o our_o church_n as_o be_v all_o eye_n and_o ear_n it_o will_v be_v proper_a to_o speak_v of_o it_o in_o its_o own_o place_n next_o to_o prove_v the_o position_n of_o the_o quaker_n to_o be_v such_o as_o overturn_v and_o destroy_v the_o gospel_n he_o bring_v page_n 11._o divers_a citation_n out_o of_o mr._n norton_n and_o mr._n stalham_n as_o he_o term_v they_o add_v more_n may_v be_v have_v out_o of_o mr._n hicks_n book_n j._n b.'s_n false_a witness_n contribute_v to_o his_o bulky_a book_n but_o such_o witness_n will_v have_v small_a credit_n with_o impartial_a reader_n if_o he_o himself_o have_v deal_v impartial_o he_o shall_v have_v first_o read_v our_o answer_n to_o they_o ere_o he_o have_v give_v they_o such_o authority_n it_o be_v easy_a for_o i_o by_o way_n of_o reply_n to_o transcribe_v what_o our_o friend_n have_v write_v particular_o by_o way_n of_o answer_n to_o they_o do_v i_o as_o much_o affect_v to_o have_v my_o write_n bulky_a as_o it_o seem_v he_o do_v he_o close_v up_o this_o with_o a_o fit_a of_o rail_a and_o after_o he_o have_v quarrel_v i_o pag._n 12._o for_o have_v a_o high_a conceit_n as_o he_o imagine_v of_o my_o thesis_n he_o fall_v fresh_a to_o that_o work_n again_o tell_v they_o have_v weight_n to_o sink_v into_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n the_o poor_a soul_n that_o embrace_v they_o i_o never_o seek_v any_o shall_v receive_v doctrine_n as_o truth_n upon_o my_o bare_a testimony_n and_o therefore_o he_o need_v not_o upbray_v i_o with_o so_o do_v and_o whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a as_o himself_o immediate_o observe_v i_o leave_v what_o i_o say_v to_o the_o light_n in_o every_o man_n conscience_n it_o show_v with_o how_o little_a reason_n he_o make_v his_o former_a alledgance_n after_o he_o have_v please_v himself_o with_o make_v a_o impertinent_a conjecture_n of_o the_o import_n of_o these_o word_n that_o so_o he_o may_v if_o he_o can_v render_v they_o ridiculous_a he_o come_v at_o last_o to_o the_o true_a understanding_n of_o they_o and_o true_o he_o need_v not_o fear_v at_o my_o be_v offend_v that_o he_o shall_v make_v a_o judgement_n of_o what_o i_o write_v according_a to_o his_o conscience_n but_o he_o go_v the_o wrong_a way_n to_o work_n when_o his_o labour_n be_v to_o pervert_v and_o wrest_v and_o make_v they_o speak_v what_o they_o do_v not_o this_o apparent_o proceed_v from_o malice_n and_o prejudice_n and_o the_o light_n of_o his_o conscience_n if_o he_o have_v mind_v it_o will_v never_o have_v prompt_v he_o so_o to_o do_v thus_o i_o be_o come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o chapter_n ¶_o 7._o in_o the_o second_o chapter_n entitle_v of_o the_o true_a ground_n of_o knowledge_n i_o find_v he_o can_v contradict_v what_o be_v assert_v by_o i_o only_o because_o he_o must_v be_v carp_n he_o make_v a_o noise_n that_o joh._n 17.3_o cite_v by_o i_o so_o much_o of_o the_o sentence_n be_v not_o set_v down_o in_o the_o first_o as_o second_o edition_n what_o a_o pitiful_a cavil_v this_o be_v the_o reader_n may_v easy_o judge_v since_o the_o place_n be_v note_v it_o be_v enough_o though_o never_o a_o word_n have_v be_v set_v down_o but_o this_o with_o he_o be_v a_o bad_a omen_n let_v the_o judicious_a judge_n of_o this_o man_n judgement_n in_o the_o matter_n but_o because_o he_o can_v quarrel_v at_o what_o be_v say_v he_o will_v quarrel_v that_o so_o much_o be_v not_o say_v as_o he_o judge_v meet_v but_o he_o may_v be_v please_v to_o understand_v that_o i_o judge_v myself_o under_o no_o necessity_n to_o advise_v with_o he_o what_o be_v needful_a for_o i_o to_o write_v but_o say_v he_o since_o i_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o teach_v the_o whole_a world_n it_o be_v strange_a it_o shall_v be_v so_o natural_a for_o this_o man_n to_o write_v untruth_n since_o i_o direct_v my_o thesis_n only_o to_o the_o christian_a world_n but_o if_o it_o may_v render_v i_o odious_a such_o peccadillo_n pass_n with_o he_o it_o seem_v but_o for_o piae_fw-la fraud_n i_o intend_v never_o to_o write_v of_o those_o thing_n concern_v which_o we_o do_v not_o differ_v from_o other_o but_o let_v we_o see_v wherein_o he_o account_v i_o defective_a i_o have_v write_v nothing_o say_v he_o of_o the_o nature_n and_o attribute_n of_o god_n i_o write_v not_o to_o atheist_n but_o christian_n who_o already_o acknowledge_v and_o i_o judge_v it_o not_o my_o work_n to_o write_v book_n to_o persuade_v man_n of_o that_o they_o already_o profess_v to_o believe_v but_o i_o write_v not_o express_o and_o
expostulate_v with_o and_o lament_v over_o jerusalem_n but_o for_o answer_n to_o all_o this_o albeit_o these_o place_n be_v grant_v all_o of_o they_o to_o be_v particular_a yet_o so_o much_o be_v gain_v by_o they_o position_n some_o that_o do_v perish_v have_v a_o day_n of_o visitation_n contrary_a to_o j._n b.'s_n false_a position_n that_o some_o that_o do_v perish_v have_v a_o day_n of_o visitation_n in_o which_o they_o may_v have_v be_v save_v and_o thus_o his_o doctrine_n salvation_n be_v never_o possible_a to_o any_o but_o to_o such_o as_o must_v necessary_o be_v save_v be_v overturn_v and_o he_o shall_v at_o least_o have_v answer_v they_o as_o to_o this_o further_o all_o the_o scripture-proof_n and_o complaint_n be_v not_o particular_a but_o some_o of_o they_o general_a and_o one_o general_a one_o be_v enough_o to_o prove_v my_o assertion_n albeit_o as_o to_o that_o i_o may_v see_v what_o he_o say_v hereafter_o to_o answer_v that_o as_o to_o the_o universality_n it_o be_v more_o particular_o prove_v in_o my_o apology_n such_o as_o gen._n 6.3_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o man_n indefinite_o and_o whereas_o he_o suppose_v this_o strive_v of_o god_n with_o man_n to_o be_v only_o by_o his_o word_n and_o servant_n mean_v the_o outward_a word_n he_o do_v but_o beg_v the_o question_n likewise_o that_o of_o micah_n 6.8_o he_o have_v show_v thou_o o_o man_n what_o be_v good_a and_o what_o do_v the_o lord_n require_v of_o thou_o but_o to_o do_v just_o and_o to_o love_v mercy_n and_o to_o walk_v humble_o with_o thy_o god_n where_o the_o word_n but_o do_v show_n this_o be_v all_o that_o be_v require_v and_o that_o no_o more_o be_v require_v than_o be_v show_v to_o man_n indefinite_o other_o may_v be_v mention_v and_o whereas_o in_o this_o and_o other_o place_n he_o say_v my_o argument_n will_v not_o prove_v that_o man_n have_v power_n to_o lay_v hold_n on_o salvation_n without_o the_o grace_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n it_o be_v true_a for_o as_o i_o never_o affirm_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v above_o observe_v so_o i_o never_o intend_v to_o bring_v any_o argument_n to_o prove_v it_o pag._n 222_o n._n 14._o in_o answer_n to_o 1_o pet._n 3.20_o bring_v by_o i_o he_o say_v i_o fore_o see_v it_o will_v be_v answer_v that_o the_o long-suffering_a of_o god_n there_o mention_v be_v not_o unto_o salvation_n but_o the_o man_n be_v unhappy_a in_o his_o conjecture_n of_o other_o man_n thought_n it_o will_v not_o follow_v it_o be_v not_o to_o salvation_n because_o the_o party_n towards_o who_o it_o be_v remain_v obstinate_a and_o so_o perish_v and_o albeit_o the_o apostle_n peter_n 2_o pet._n 3.15_o be_v speak_v to_o his_o brethren_n who_o may_v have_v be_v advance_v in_o grace_n yet_o he_o show_v not_o how_o it_o thence_o follow_v that_o the_o long-suffering_a there_o mention_v be_v restrict_v to_o they_o only_o the_o text_n say_v no_o such_o thing_n and_o what_o though_o this_o epistle_n of_o peter_n be_v not_o particular_o direct_v to_o the_o roman_n to_o who_o paul_n write_v yet_o this_o be_v a_o general_a epistle_n include_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n among_o the_o rest_n and_o other_o have_v need_v to_o have_v see_v paul_n be_v epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n since_o accord_v to_o he_o it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o their_o principle_n and_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n but_o to_o overturn_v what_o i_o observe_v here_o from_o peter_n take_v notice_n of_o some_o wrest_v paul_n be_v write_n he_o bring_v nothing_o but_o his_o own_o affirmation_n his_o answer_n to_o what_o i_o urge_v from_o the_o riches_n and_o bounty_n of_o god_n towards_o man_n speak_v of_o rom._n 2.4_o which_o can_v not_o be_v if_o salvation_n be_v impossible_a to_o they_o be_v that_o the_o riches_n there_o mention_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o good_a thing_n of_o this_o life_n contrary_a to_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o text_n text._n j._n b.'s_n explanation_n of_o the_o riches_n of_o god_n goodness_n etc._n etc._n contrary_a to_o the_o text._n which_o show_v that_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o riches_n and_o long-suffering_a be_v to_o lead_v to_o repentance_n and_o ver_fw-la 7._o eternal_a life_n be_v propose_v as_o the_o reward_n of_o such_o as_o by_o not_o despise_v of_o those_o riches_n be_v lead_v to_o repentance_n and_o continue_v in_o well-doing_n and_o whereas_o he_o add_v this_o can_v be_v do_v by_o the_o mere_a strength_n of_o nature_n without_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n i_o never_o say_v so_o and_o therefore_o like_a to_o this_o calumny_n be_v what_o he_o say_v p._n 225._o where_o that_o he_o may_v take_v occasion_n to_o rail_v and_o reflect_v he_o will_v make_v his_o reader_n believe_v that_o i_o argue_v that_o because_o man_n can_v do_v evil_a they_o have_v therefore_o a_o power_n to_o do_v good_a and_o then_o please_v himself_o to_o add_v these_o be_v quaker_n like_a inference_n that_o want_v all_o solidity_n and_o no_o little_a of_o sobriety_n at_o last_o he_o desire_v i_o to_o prove_v grace_n the_o talent_n save_v grace_n that_o by_o the_o talent_n mention_v mat._n 25.15_o be_v understand_v save_v grace_n but_o if_o he_o think_v that_o be_v not_o mean_v by_o they_o i_o will_v know_v of_o he_o what_o be_v mean_v for_o it_o be_v observable_a he_o do_v not_o because_o the_o dare_v not_o deny_v that_o save_v grace_n or_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n be_v mean_v by_o they_o do_v not_o christ_n make_v use_n of_o this_o parable_n to_o compare_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o it_o and_o be_v it_o not_o of_o the_o same_o import_n with_o the_o former_a of_o the_o ten_o virgin_n five_o whereof_o who_o have_v oil_n in_o their_o lamp_n i_o suppose_v he_o will_v confess_v this_o be_v save_v grace_n enter_v with_o the_o bridegroom_n be_v it_o not_o say_v to_o those_o that_o improve_v their_o talent_n well_o do_v good_a and_o faithful_a servant_n enter_v into_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o lord_n it_o be_v much_o the_o man_n have_v confidence_n to_o insinuate_v so_o much_o as_o a_o denial_n that_o save_v grace_n be_v here_o mean_v as_o to_o what_o he_o add_v of_o this_o be_v not_o universal_a and_o not_o prove_v that_o man_n have_v power_n of_o themselves_o without_o divine_a help_n and_o grace_n i_o have_v answer_v it_o above_o ¶_o 3._o i_o come_v now_o to_o his_o ten_o chapter_n entitle_v of_o universal_a grace_n and_o light_n where_o he_o grow_v warm_a to_o purpose_n and_o rail_n almost_o constant_o he_o be_v scarce_o well_o enter_v this_o chapter_n when_o he_o account_v the_o further_a piece_n of_o our_o divinity_n as_o he_o term_v it_o and_o against_o which_o himself_o write_v as_o nonsense_n and_o the_o foam_a of_o a_o distract_a brain_n yea_o p._n 228._o such_o as_o he_o doubt_v whether_o it_o can_v be_v understand_v at_o all_o pag._n 230._o who_o be_v mean_v be_v vnintelligible_a but_o what_o need_v he_o bestow_v near_o forty_o page_n it_o j._n b._n bestow_v near_o 40_o page_n to_o refute_v vnintelligible_a nonsense_n as_o he_o call_v it_o to_o refute_v vnintelligible_a nonsense_n for_o if_o it_o be_v so_o he_o can_v be_v sure_a he_o have_v refute_v it_o since_o no_o man_n can_v be_v sure_a he_o have_v answer_v that_o sufficient_o he_o do_v not_o understand_v and_o his_o malice_n have_v so_o over-driven_a he_o that_o he_o write_v down_o his_o own_o judgement_n say_v pag._n 227._o some_o may_v just_o blame_v he_o for_o spend_v word_n and_o waste_a time_n upon_o such_o a_o nonsensical_a self-contradictory_a proposition_n yet_o the_o man_n will_v be_v do_v that_o for_o which_o he_o confess_v he_o be_v just_o unblamable_a and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o as_o he_o further_o confess_v p._n 261._o that_o nonsense_n can_v be_v well_o answer_v of_o this_o violent_a rail_a take_n one_o instance_n p._n 248._o where_n in_o answer_n to_o my_o say_n that_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n will_v not_o consent_v to_o any_o abomination_n but_o take_v away_o blindness_n open_v thevnderstanding_n and_o direct_v the_o judgement_n and_o conscience_n quaker_n j._n b._n be_v rail_a stuff_n against_o the_o quaker_n he_o add_v and_o while_o the_o quaker_n preach_v up_o this_o as_o a_o sure_a guide_n to_o life_n eternal_a they_o be_v abominable_a pelagian_a and_o socinian_n deceiver_n who_o shall_v be_v flee_v from_o as_o the_o most_o impudent_a and_o swear_a enemy_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o gospel_n that_o ever_o appear_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n a_o company_n of_o pure_a pagan-preacher_n who_o doctrine_n be_v paganism_n and_o drive_v thereunto_o the_o reader_n may_v judge_v of_o the_o rest_n which_o he_o may_v find_v in_o term_n no_o less_o abusive_a very_o frequent_a pag._n 227_o 233_o 234_o 237_o 238_o 240_o 248_o 258_o 260_o 261_o 266._o all_o which_o rail_a as_o it_o occur_v in_o these_o
their_o fellow-servant_n the_o hazzard_n of_o which_o state_n thou_o know_v and_o many_o will_v feel_v when_o the_o lord_n rise_v up_o to_o prey_n for_o his_o eye_n be_v upon_o the_o righteous_a and_o his_o ear_n be_v open_a to_o their_o cry_n though_o now_o he_o be_v try_v the_o child_n of_o man_n and_o permit_v some_o to_o suffer_v and_o other_o to_o do_v hard_a thing_n yet_o a_o hope_n live_v in_o i_o the_o time_n approach_v wherein_o the_o lord_n will_v more_o manifest_o appear_v to_o the_o joy_n and_o refreshment_n of_o the_o single_a in_o heart_n who_o suffer_v with_o he_o and_o patient_o wait_v for_o he_o and_o for_o the_o shame_n and_o utter_v overthrow_n of_o his_o malicious_a opposer_n and_o so_o one_o of_o the_o particular_n i_o will_v lay_v before_o thou_o be_v a_o desire_n lord_n search_v thy_o own_o heart_n in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o lord_n thou_o will_v yet_o in_o the_o lord_n light_n search_v thy_o own_o heart_n more_o till_o thou_o find_v out_o what_o secret_a affinity_n have_v remain_v with_o thou_o to_o any_o of_o the_o lord_n enemy_n in_o thy_o own_o heart_n for_o if_o all_o be_v bring_v under_o the_o government_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n inward_o i_o be_o full_o persuade_v thy_o outward_a opposition_n to_o the_o lord_n work_n can_v not_o long_o stand_v the_o outward_a be_v a_o true_a figure_n of_o the_o inward_a and_o i_o know_v by_o true_a experience_n all_o that_o despite_n and_o disdainful_a undervalue_v epithet_n thou_o squeeze_v up_o thy_o engine_n to_o coin_n which_o one_o may_v feel_v answer_v not_o full_o thy_o own_o satisfaction_n for_o bespatter_v and_o load_v that_o people_n and_o their_o principle_n be_v but_o alas_o a_o mirrour-glass_n set_v up_o to_o represent_v the_o low_a mean_a rabbi_n the_o mean_a appearance_n of_o christ_n despise_v by_o the_o learned_a rabbi_n unworthy_a esteem_n thou_o bear_v to_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n in_o its_o inward_a appearance_n in_o thou_o as_o a_o reprover_n for_o whosoever_o turn_v universal_o at_o the_o reproof_n of_o god_n light_n in_o the_o conscience_n shall_v witness_v the_o pour_v forth_o of_o his_o spirit_n in_o large_a manifestation_n according_a to_o prov._n 1.23_o but_o that_o spirit_n speak_v in_o thou_o of_o which_o isaiah_n prophesy_v isa._n 53.2_o 3_o etc._n etc._n concern_v the_o outward_a appearance_n of_o the_o same_o christ_n our_o head_n and_o the_o captain_n of_o our_o salvation_n who_o suffering_n death_n resurrection_n and_o glory_n we_o dear_o own_o and_o wait_v from_o day_n to_o day_n more_o to_o feel_v the_o precious_a virtue_n thereof_o although_o he_o then_o be_v and_o now_o be_v reject_v and_o despise_v of_o man_n who_o hide_v as_o it_o be_v their_o face_n from_o he_o because_o his_o outward_a appearance_n be_v as_o a_o root_n out_o of_o a_o dry_a ground_n in_o who_o there_o be_v no_o form_n nor_o comeliness_n nor_o beauty_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v desire_v by_o that_o mind_n which_o be_v look_v after_o great_a thing_n add_v expect_v much_o outward_a glory_n and_o advantage_n and_o so_o christ_n appearance_n be_v mistake_v by_o the_o learned_a rabbi_n in_o that_o day_n notwithstanding_o they_o have_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n testimony_n and_o be_v not_o want_v in_o read_v the_o letter_n as_o other_o now_o for_o as_o it_o be_v then_o it_o be_v now_o he_o be_v and_o be_v mistake_v by_o all_o who_o seek_v any_o thing_n to_o glory_n in_o save_o the_o cross_n of_o christ._n for_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n have_v and_o do_v lift_v fall_v man_n above_o the_o innocent_a seed_n in_o themselves_o only_o through_o which_o they_o can_v see_v the_o invisible_a glory_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o find_v a_o abundant_a entrance_n unto_o the_o righteousness_n peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whereof_o it_o consist_v wherefore_o take_v heed_n of_o be_v lift_v up_o above_o the_o seed_n light_n life_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o thou_o and_o so_o thou_o will_v see_v matter_n to_o work_n out_o thy_o salvation_n in_o fear_n and_o tremble_v and_o will_v not_o sit_v down_o upon_o former_a attainment_n or_o experience_n when_o the_o life_n be_v go_v strife_n the_o great_a danger_n of_o sin_n at_o the_o water_n of_o strife_n another_o thing_n i_o will_v put_v thou_o in_o remembrance_n of_o in_o these_o present_a time_n be_v the_o great_a danger_n of_o sin_v at_o the_o water_n of_o strife_n whereof_o moses_n his_o example_n may_v be_v a_o stand_a monument_n to_o all_o generation_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v he_o be_v the_o meek_a man_n upon_o the_o earth_n yet_o at_o the_o water_n of_o strife_n he_o speak_v unadvised_o with_o his_o lip_n because_o of_o which_o he_o be_v debar_v from_o enter_v into_o the_o promise_a rest._n and_o be_v there_o not_o some_o live_n at_o this_o day_n who_o with_o sorrow_n of_o heart_n have_v observe_v the_o heat_n and_o bitterness_n of_o spirit_n that_o have_v arisen_a because_o difference_n and_o controversy_n concern_v religion_n have_v eat_v out_o the_o life_n of_o that_o love_n and_o tenderness_n that_o be_v with_o many_o and_o have_v hurt_v the_o green_a thing_n in_o themselves_o and_o one_o another_o have_v bring_v on_o death_n darkness_n dryness_n and_o sensible_a wither_v and_o can_v choose_v but_o so_o to_o do_v see_v bitterness_n of_o spirit_n and_o prejudice_n and_o such_o like_a frames_n in_o man_n or_o woman_n separate_v from_o god_n love_n dwell_v in_o love_n while_o there_o any_o one_o abide_v for_o god_n be_v love_n and_o he_o that_o dwell_v in_o god_n dwell_v in_o love_n and_o christ_n have_v say_v unless_o you_o abide_v in_o i_o you_o can_v bring_v forth_o much_o fruit_n so_o not_o abide_v in_o that_o pure_a love_n to_o god_n and_o his_o image_n in_o his_o child_n have_v cause_v many_o fall_n short_a and_o have_v let_v their_o progress_n and_o make_v many_o lose_a sight_n of_o their_o way_n and_o the_o guide_n of_o their_o youth_n and_o so_o they_o have_v not_o follow_v the_o lord_n full_o nor_o follow_v he_o in_o the_o regeneration_n renew_v according_a to_o the_o increase_n of_o light_n and_o the_o measure_n of_o his_o manifestation_n whereby_o they_o shall_v know_v even_o in_o this_o life_n a_o be_v change_v from_o glory_n to_o glory_n as_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n thou_o mention_v in_o thy_o postscript_n to_o j._n b._n pag._n 557._o many_o who_o may_v remember_v with_o shame_n and_o confusion_n of_o face_n their_o laugh_a at_o and_o make_v light_n of_o the_o appearance_n of_o that_o prodigy_n and_o that_o it_o may_v cause_v some_o go_v groan_v to_o their_o grave_n be_v a_o evidence_n that_o you_o know_v not_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o time_n and_o what_o they_o call_v you_o to_o do_v to_o which_o i_o answer_v lightness_n and_o laugh_v among_o people_n that_o lie_v claim_v to_o religion_n be_v none_o of_o the_o least_o cause_n of_o mourn_a but_o i_o also_o believe_v if_o the_o appearance_n of_o quakerism_n so_o call_v have_v in_o the_o beginning_n be_v look_v on_o ministry_n the_o forerunner_n of_o the_o downfall_n of_o a_o man-made_a ministry_n as_o the_o forerunner_n of_o the_o down-fall_a of_o a_o mere_a man-made_a ministry_n in_o these_o nation_n it_o be_v like_a it_o will_v have_v move_v those_o who_o laugh_v most_o to_o have_v mourn_v most_o even_o then_o and_o babylon_n merchant_n will_v have_v cry_v alas_o alas_o but_o since_o now_o thou_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o space_n of_o a_o score_n of_o year_n at_o most_o thou_o see_v cause_n to_o mourn_v for_o that_o which_o you_o then_o laugh_v at_o i_o be_o very_o willing_a to_o admit_v of_o your_o own_o acknowledgement_n for_o a_o ground_n of_o hope_n that_o the_o single-hearted_n among_o the_o nonconformist_n may_v outlive_v all_o the_o clamour_n they_o be_v now_o make_v against_o we_o and_o in_o less_o than_o as_o many_o year_n more_o may_v work_v through_o the_o fog_n and_o mist_n that_o now_o darken_v their_o understanding_n concern_v the_o sign_n of_o this_o time_n and_o look_v back_o with_o shame_n and_o confusion_n on_o their_o great_a darkness_n that_o will_v have_v mourn_v for_o that_o which_o be_v matter_n of_o joy_n and_o this_o be_v no_o far-fetched_a consequence_n for_o you_o have_v then_o and_o now_o the_o same_o acquaintance_n with_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o as_o much_o humane_a learning_n and_o sharpness_n and_o natural_a ability_n for_o a_o acute_a examen_fw-la and_o so_o it_o follow_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o contrary_n and_o may_v it_o not_o be_v without_o presumption_n conclude_v you_o need_v then_o and_o do_v now_o the_o help_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v immediate_a teach_n in_o your_o own_o heart_n without_o which_o you_o will_v not_o yet_o understand_v the_o sign_n of_o this_o time_n aright_o which_o if_o you_o do_v flesh._n the_o lord_n be_v stain_v
26._o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o affirm_v christ_n be_v in_o none_o but_o those_o with_o who_o he_o be_v unite_v 6_o 63._o christ_n pray_v to_o save_v he_o from_o this_o hour_n explain_v 783._o what_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v 861_o 901._o christian_n how_o he_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o when_o he_o cease_v so_o to_o be_v 269_o 270_o 273_o 281_o 282_o 283_o 285_o 394_o 410_o 412_o 418._o the_o foundation_n of_o his_o faith_n 294_o 295._o his_o privilege_n ibid._n when_o man_n be_v make_v christian_n by_o birth_n and_o not_o by_o conversion_n 405_o 406._o they_o have_v borrow_v many_o thing_n from_o jew_n and_o gentile_n 475_o 476._o they_o recoil_v by_o little_a and_o little_a from_o their_o first_o purity_n 486_o 509._o the_o primitive_a christian_n for_o some_o age_n say_v we_o be_v christian_n we_o swear_v not_o 555._o and_o we_o be_v the_o soldier_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o we_o to_o fight_v 562._o concern_v the_o life_n of_o a_o christian_a what_o and_o how_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v 149_o 157._o every_o christian_n ought_v to_o be_v concern_v in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n 707_o a_o judgement_n of_o several_a sort_n of_o christian_n must_v be_v make_v from_o their_o respective_a principle_n and_o not_o from_o the_o practice_n of_o particular_a person_n 684._o the_o gather_v of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n be_v a_o unite_n of_o heart_n and_o not_o of_o hand_n only_o 697_o 709._o christianity_n be_v make_v as_o a_o art_n 273._o it_o be_v not_o christianity_n without_o the_o spirit_n 281_o 283_o 296_o 297._o it_o will_v be_v turn_v into_o scepticism_n 423_o 424_o 484_o 491_o 492._o it_o be_v place_v chief_o in_o the_o renew_n of_o the_o heart_n 407._o wherein_o it_o consist_v not_o 450._o what_o be_v and_o be_v not_o the_o mark_n thereof_o 484_o 486_o 492._o why_o it_o be_v odious_a to_o jew_n turk_n and_o heathen_n 498._o what_o will_v contribute_v to_o its_o commendation_n 534._o what_o the_o cause_n be_v of_o all_o the_o mischief_n in_o christendom_n 711_o 713._o the_o essence_n or_o be_v of_o christianity_n place_v in_o the_o true_a and_o real_a conversion_n of_o the_o heart_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o light_n seed_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n 700._o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o name_n and_o nothing_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o true_a christianity_n among_o christian_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o clergy_n 708_o 709_o 27._o the_o call_v of_o god_n to_o blind_a christendom_n 356._o church_n without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n what_o she_o be_v concern_v her_o member_n visibility_n profession_n degeneration_n succession_n 403_o to_o 417._o whatsoever_o be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n without_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v vain_a and_o impious_a 419._o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o she_o that_o in_o the_o school_n be_v dispute_v of_o theseus_n boat_n 431._o in_o her_o correction_n ought_v to_o be_v exercise_v and_o against_o who_o 508._o she_o be_v more_o corrupt_a by_o the_o accession_n of_o hypocrite_n 521._o the_o contention_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n about_o leaven_a or_o unleavened_a bread_n in_o the_o supper_n 506._o the_o lukewarmness_n of_o the_o church_n of_o laodicea_n 411._o there_o be_v introduce_v into_o the_o roman_a church_n no_o less_o superstition_n and_o ceremony_n than_o among_o the_o heathen_n and_o jew_n 406._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n pretend_a charity_n 688_o 689._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n no_o church_n 647._o the_o basis_n and_o foundation_n of_o that_o church_n stand_v in_o confess_v the_o superiority_n and_o precedency_n of_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n and_o in_o believe_v that_o infallibility_n be_v annex_v thereunto_o 688._o the_o true_a church_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o false_a by_o its_o real_a sanctification_n and_o true_a holiness_n 203._o what_o a_o church_n be_v define_v 208._o the_o notion_n and_o definition_n of_o a_o church_n which_o arise_v from_o the_o universal_a principle_n of_o light_n and_o grace_n do_v establish_v universal_a love_n 702._o the_o cause_n of_o the_o true_a church_n gather_v to_o a_o body_n be_v a_o sense_n of_o their_o want_n 697._o such_o as_o be_v sanctify_v proper_o constitute_v the_o church_n 226._o who_o be_v the_o head_n and_o who_o the_o minister_n thereof_o 139_o 144_o 167_o 168._o god_n care_n over_o his_o church_n and_o heritage_n 191_o 192._o man_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v within_o the_o church_n who_o want_v outward_a preach_v 805_o 807._o the_o great_a property_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v pure_a unity_n in_o spirit_n 217._o the_o ground_n of_o division_n separation_n and_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n 188._o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n condescension_n be_v practise_v in_o case_n of_o weakness_n though_o those_o weak_a one_o be_v not_o suffer_v to_o propagate_v their_o scruple_n 223_o 224_o in_o what_o case_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n may_v pronounce_v a_o positive_a sentence_n and_o judgement_n without_o the_o hazard_n of_o imposition_n upon_o either_o of_o the_o party_n controvert_v 216_o 867._o circumcision_n a_o seal_n of_o the_o old_a covenant_n 490_o 586._o clergy_n 428_o 430_o 433_o 436_o 437_o 507._o the_o clergy_n the_o great_a promoter_n of_o war_n 708_o 709._o they_o be_v so_o impudent_a as_o to_o thank_v god_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o their_o fellow-creature_n 709._o upon_o the_o charge_n of_o a_o prince_n or_o state_n they_o will_v pray_v for_o those_o to_o who_o before_o they_o wish_v ruin_n and_o destruction_n ibid._n they_o cloud_n the_o truth_n that_o the_o common_a people_n may_v maintain_v and_o admire_v they_o 731._o they_o act_v the_o mad_a prank_n of_o john_n of_o leyden_n in_o the_o civil_a war_n of_o england_n 668._o see_v protestant_n clothes_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o christian_n to_o use_v thing_n superfluous_a in_o clothes_n 543_o 545_o 564_o 565._o comforter_n for_o what_o end_n he_o be_v send_v 271_o 272._o commission_n the_o commission_n of_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n before_o the_o work_n be_v finish_v be_v more_o legal_a than_o evangelical_n 419._o communion_n the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o spiritual_a and_o inward_a thing_n 148_o 149._o that_o body_n that_o blood_n be_v a_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o that_o it_o be_v that_o heavenly_a seed_n whereby_o life_n and_o salvation_n be_v of_o old_a and_o be_v now_o communicate_v 593_o 594._o how_o any_o become_v partaker_n thereof_o 496_o 497_o 498._o it_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o the_o ceremony_n of_o break_v bread_n and_o drink_a wine_n which_o christ_n use_v with_o his_o disciple_n this_o be_v only_o a_o figure_n 494_o 497_o to_o 503._o whether_o that_o ceremony_n be_v a_o necessary_a part_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o whether_o it_o be_v to_o be_v continue_v 504_o to_o 515._o spiritual_a communion_n with_o god_n through_o christ_n be_v obtain_v 311._o they_o that_o witness_v christ_n come_v need_v not_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o put_v they_o in_o remembrance_n of_o he_o 35_o see_v supper_n community_n of_o good_n be_v not_o bring_v in_o by_o the_o quaker_n 516_o 533_o 534._o compliment_n see_v title_n conscience_n see_v magistrate_n its_o definition_n what_o it_o be_v it_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o save_a light_n 366_o 337_o 338_o 515_o 516._o the_o good_a conscience_n and_o the_o hypocritical_a 400._o he_o that_o act_v contrary_a to_o his_o conscience_n sin_v and_o concern_v a_o err_v conscience_n 516._o what_o thing_n appertain_v to_o conscience_n ibid._n what_o sort_n of_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n be_v defend_v 517._o it_o be_v the_o throne_n of_o god_n ibid._n it_o be_v free_a from_o the_o power_n of_o all_o man_n 527._o conscience_n and_o reason_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o save_v light_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o man_n 603._o clem._n alex._n his_o testimony_n 579._o god_n alone_o can_v inform_v and_o inlighten_v the_o conscience_n 704._o conversion_n what_o be_v man_n therein_o be_v rather_o a_o passion_n than_o a_o action_n 331._o augustin_n say_v ibid._n this_o be_v clear_v by_o two_o example_n 339_o 340._o conversion_n presuppose_v have_v light_n and_o grace_n 8._o controversy_n solid_a controversy_n may_v be_v entertain_v for_o clear_v and_o maintain_v the_o truth_n 730._o correction_n how_o and_o against_o who_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v exercise_v 517._o covenant_n the_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o new_a and_o old_a covenant-worship_n 286_o 287_o 441_o 442_o 456_o 458_o 484._o see_v also_o gospel_n law_n court_n see_v prince_n cross_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n 492._o d._n dance_v see_v play_n day_n whether_o any_o be_v holy_a and_o concern_v the_o day_n common_o call_v the_o lord_n day_n 442_o 503._o whether_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n have_v any_o more_o inherent_a holiness_n than_o any_o other_o day_n
the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o usurp_v authority_n over_o their_o fellow-member_n 229._o decisive_a judgement_n explain_v 243._o true_a and_o false_a decision_n 244._o unsettled_a man_n judge_v 683_o 684._o charitable_a and_o uncharitable_a judgement_n 686._o god_n the_o judge_n of_o conscience_n 516_o 517._o he_o that_o be_v spiritual_a judge_v all_o thing_n 795_o see_v church_n justification_n the_o doctrine_n thereof_o be_v and_o have_v be_v great_o vitiate_v among_o the_o papist_n and_o wherein_o they_o place_v it_o 364_o 365_o 380_o 382_o luther_n and_o the_o protestant_n with_o good_a reason_n oppose_v this_o doctrine_n though_o many_o of_o they_o run_v soon_o into_o another_o extreme_a and_o wherein_o they_o place_v it_o and_o that_o they_o agree_v in_o one_o 366_o 387_o 370._o it_o come_v from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n 367_o 379_o 380._o to_o justify_v signify_v to_o to_o make_v real_o just_a not_o to_o repute_v just_o which_o many_o protestant_n be_v also_o force_v to_o acknowledge_v 370_o 371_o 374_o 377._o the_o revelation_n of_o christ_n form_v in_o the_o heart_n be_v the_o formal_a cause_n of_o justification_n not_o work_n to_o speak_v proper_o which_o be_v only_o a_o effect_n and_o so_o also_o many_o protestant_n have_v say_v 364_o 380._o we_o be_v justify_v in_o work_n and_o how_o 364_o 370_o 371_o 380_o 387._o this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v popish_a doctrine_n that_o bellarmine_n and_o other_o oppose_v it_o 365_o 369_o 385_o 386._o we_o be_v justify_v by_o christ_n jesus_n both_o as_o he_o appear_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o also_o as_o he_o be_v make_v manifest_a and_o reveal_v in_o we_o 19_o 20._o justification_n by_o the_o indwel_n of_o christ_n be_v deny_v by_o the_o papist_n 78._o primitive_a protestant_n belief_n concern_v justification_n 79._o concern_v faith_n and_o justification_n 129_o 166._o a_o twofold_a justification_n 25._o it_o be_v the_o make_v a_o man_n just_a by_o a_o inward_a righteousness_n 77._o 811._o the_o doer_n of_o the_o law_n justify_v 806._o antinomian_o imputative_a justification_n refute_v 812._o j._n b_n gross_a opinion_n of_o it_o 814._o no_o man_n be_v justify_v before_o he_o be_v sanctify_v 816_o the_o real_a justification_n fall_v under_o the_o inward_a sensation_n of_o the_o soul_n 817._o k._n keith_n g._n k._n vindicate_v from_o our_o adversary_n malicious_a insinuation_n against_o he_o 621._o kingdom_n of_o god_n 459_o 511_o 517._o christ_n kingdom_n need_v no_o outward_a protection_n 846._o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v within_o you_o 803._o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v in_o the_o seed_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n 354._o kirk_n the_o greedy_a kirk_n become_v a_o proverb_n 437._o knowledge_n the_o height_n of_o man_n happiness_n be_v place_v in_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n 467._o error_n in_o the_o entrance_n of_o this_o knowledge_n be_v dangerous_a 267_o 268._o superstition_n idolatry_n and_o thence_o atheism_n have_v proceed_v from_o the_o false_a and_o feign_a opinion_n concern_v god_n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o 269._o the_o uncertain_a knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v divers_a way_n attain_v but_o the_o true_a and_o certain_a only_o by_o the_o inward_a and_o immediate_a revelation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 269_o 271._o it_o have_v be_v bring_v out_o of_o use_n and_o by_o what_o device_n 272_o 273._o there_o be_v no_o knowledge_n of_o the_o father_n but_o by_o the_o son_n nor_o of_o the_o son_n but_o by_o the_o spirit_n 268_o 274_o 275._o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v not_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o heart_n be_v no_o more_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n than_o the_o prattle_a of_o a_o parrot_n which_o have_v be_v teach_v a_o few_o word_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o man_n 276_o 277._o the_o objection_n that_o the_o apostle_n prefer_v the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n as_o outward_o crucify_a to_o all_o other_o knowledge_n answer_v 9_o his_o inward_a knowledge_n prefer_v 67._o the_o true_a and_o save_a knowledge_n of_o god_n 115_o 161._o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o history_n save_v none_o 355._o many_o by_o the_o light_n may_v be_v save_v that_o have_v not_o the_o outward_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n 356_o of_o the_o true_a ground_n of_o knowledge_n 728_o 733._o the_o difference_n between_o head-knowledge_n and_o the_o partake_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n 763_o 764._o monopolizer_n of_o knowledge_n 889._o 428_o see_v clergy_n the_o christian_a religion_n consist_v not_o in_o the_o historical_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n 895._o see_v indian_n &c_n &c_n l._n labour_v they_o want_v nothing_o who_o god_n send_v they_o labour_v with_o their_o hand_n 435._o lace_n and_o ribbon_n 873._o laic_n 429_o 432_o 433._o laity_n 433_o 507._o lake_n of_o bethesda_n 338_o 339._o lamb_n see_v paschal_n lamb._n language_n the_o plain_a language_n use_v in_o the_o scripture_n 58._o concern_v our_o use_v thou_o and_o thou_o which_o be_v the_o singular_a number_n to_o one_o person_n 61._o to_o use_v the_o plural_a instead_o of_o the_o singular_a number_n to_o one_o person_n be_v no_o indifferent_a thing_n 3_o 4._o see_v number_n the_o singular_a number_n to_o one_o person_n use_v in_o the_o latin_a 539._o how_o the_o word_n you_o come_v to_o be_v use_v to_o a_o single_a person_n ibid._n the_o word_n thou_n a_o great_a honour_n to_o one_o than_o you_o 540._o scripture-dialect_n the_o plain_a language_n 541._o law_n the_o law_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o gospel_n 287_o 384._o the_o difference_n thereof_o 287_o 493._o see_v gospel_n under_o the_o law_n the_o people_n be_v not_o in_o any_o doubt_n who_o shall_v be_v priest_n and_o minister_n 408._o see_v minister_n of_o the_o law_n worship_n the_o testimony_n law_n and_o word_n be_v inward_a in_o the_o heart_n 15_o 71._o the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n and_o beginning_n of_o the_o gospel_n 187._o wherein_o the_o law_n and_o gospel_n differ_v 298_o 393_o 484._o the_o outward_a and_o inward_a law_n 286._o the_o law_n of_o christ_n more_o perfect_a than_o of_o moses_n 558._o the_o divine_a law_n be_v implant_v in_o man_n nature_n before_o all_o law_n make_v by_o man_n 701._o j._n b_n proof_n for_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o law_n and_o testimony_n 756._o his_n assert_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n against_o his_o former_a reason_n 793._o law_n of_o moses_n see_v legal_a rite_n lawyer_n by_o trick_n and_o intricacy_n foment_n controversy_n 209_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n 511._o see_v hand_n learn_v the_o lord_n be_v anger_v the_o wise_a and_o learned_a 885_o learning_n what_o true_a learning_n be_v 421_o 422._o humane_a learning_n be_v not_o the_o qualification_n of_o a_o minister_n 140_o 305_o 703_o 730._o see_v literature_n school_n of_o learning_n leaven_v j._n b'_v objection_n against_o the_o word_n fermentum_fw-la leaven_n or_o fermentation_n a_o leavening_n answer_v 855._o legal_a rite_n have_v a_o command_n as_o well_o as_o john_n baptism_n 857._o leonisis_n a_o sect_n they_o have_v a_o great_a show_n of_o truth_n 532._o in_o the_o margin_n letter_n the_o letter_n kill_v quicken_v not_o 393._o like_a pharisee_n the_o outward_a law_n so_o now_o professor_n plead_v the_o letter_n 15._o how_o the_o letter_n kill_v 18_o 76._o levi_n a_o figure_n of_o christ_n 655_o leyden_n john_n of_o leyden_n and_o ignatius_n loyola_n their_o practice_n resemble_v by_o w._n m._n and_o his_o brethren_n 58_o liar_n their_o punishment_n 557_o libertine_n see_v ranter_n liberty_n the_o true_a liberty_n in_o the_o church_n 222._o breach_n of_o liberty_n beget_v jar_n ibid._n a_o false_a liberty_n 224._o a_o wrong_a spirit_n of_o liberty_n 246._o what_o liberty_n we_o claim_v in_o thing_n religious_a 516_o 520_o 524_o lie_n 276._o lie_a title_n 535._o christian_n not_o to_o speak_v a_o lie_n 875._o j._n b_o s_o refuge_n of_o lie_n 877._o light_v the_o innate_a light_n be_v explain_v by_o cicero_n 361_o 362._o light_n of_o nature_n the_o error_n of_o the_o socinian_o and_o pelagian_o who_o exalt_v this_o light_n be_v reject_v 310_o 311._o save_v light_n see_v redemption_n be_v universal_a it_o be_v in_o all_o 330_o 331._o it_o be_v a_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a principle_n 333_o 334._o it_o be_v a_o substance_n not_o a_o accident_n 334_o 335._o it_o be_v supernatural_a and_o sufficient_a 346_o 348._o it_o be_v the_o gospel_n preach_v in_o every_o creature_n 349_o 350._o it_o be_v the_o word_n nigh_o in_o the_o mouth_n and_o in_o the_o heart_n 350_o 351._o it_o be_v the_o engraft_a word_n able_a to_o save_v the_o soul_n 353._o testimony_n of_o augustin_n and_o buchanan_n concern_v this_o light_n 363._o it_o be_v not_o any_o part_n of_o nature_n or_o relic_n of_o the_o light_n rema_v in_o adam_n after_o the_o fall_n 337._o it_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o conscience_n 337_o 338._o it_o be_v not_o a_o common_a gift_n as_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o
fire_n and_o outward_a light_n of_o the_o sun_n as_o a_o certain_a preacher_n say_v 357._o it_o may_v be_v resist_v 331_o 333_o 338_o 398_o 399._o by_o this_o light_n or_o seed_n grace_n and_o word_n of_o god_n he_o invite_v all_o and_o call_v they_o to_o salvation_n 352_o 354_o none_o of_o those_o to_o who_o the_o history_n of_o christ_n be_v preach_v be_v save_v but_o by_o the_o inward_a operation_n of_o this_o light_n 353_o 355._o it_o be_v small_a in_o the_o first_o manifestation_n but_o it_o grow_v 353._o it_o be_v slight_v by_o the_o calvinist_n papist_n socinian_o and_o arminian_o and_o why_o 354._o none_o can_v put_v it_o to_o silence_n 357._o there_o be_v and_o may_v be_v save_v by_o the_o operation_n thereof_o who_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o history_n of_o christ_n 318_o 319_o 331_o 336_o 337_o 352_o 356_o 362._o a_o answer_n to_o the_o objection_n that_o none_o can_v be_v save_v but_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 358_o 359_o 367._o the_o light_n within_o be_v believe_v in_o and_o obey_v lead_v to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o scripture_n 11._o where_o the_o light_n be_v there_o be_v christ_n himself_o ibid._n 63._o the_o light_n be_v not_o contradistinguish_v from_o the_o gospel_n but_o be_v the_o same_o 64_o some_o may_v have_v save_v light_n and_o grace_n who_o after_o a_o certain_a manner_n may_v be_v say_v not_o to_o have_v the_o spirit_n 66_o the_o light_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o man_n will_v discover_v the_o intent_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o flatter_v none_o 711._o the_o light_n be_v no_o introduction_n to_o paganism_n 67._o concern_v the_o light_n 123._o the_o light_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n 126_o 165._o light_n of_o nature_n object_v 693._o the_o light_n seed_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n no_o part_n of_o man_n nature_n 694._o the_o inward_a principle_n of_o life_n and_o light_n describe_v 699._o deaf_a people_n etc._n etc._n the_o light_n may_v influence_n which_o write_n etc._n etc._n not_o 759_o 805_o 302._o objection_n against_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o light_n 797_o 798._o it_o be_v sufficient_a and_o save_a ibid._n it_o be_v not_o nature_n light_n 829._o the_o testimony_n of_o cyrill_n alex._n of_o the_o light_n 344_o life_n the_o principle_n of_o divine_a life_n be_v never_o idle_a 644._o the_o life_n of_o word_n witness_v ibid._n see_v christ_n no_o nourishment_n no_o life_n 414._o lifeless_a member_n what_o church_n they_o make_v ibid._n literature_n humane_a literature_n be_v not_o at_o all_o needful_a 421_o etc._n etc._n see_v minister_n science_n liturgy_n 444_o 455._o logic_n 423_o 424._o ‑_o aristotle_n logic_n by_o papist_n and_o protestant_n make_v the_o handmaid_n of_o divinity_n so_o call_v 305_o lord_n there_o be_v one_o lord_n 279_o 280._o no_o man_n can_v call_v jesus_n lord_n etc._n etc._n 276_o 468._o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n how_o take_v in_o scripture_n 487_o lot_n abraham_n and_o lot_n bow_v 874_o love_n of_o a_o love-feast_n 509_o 510_o 679_o 694_o 704_o lucifer_n lucifer_n spirit_n affect_v honour_n 537_o 538_o lukewarmness_n of_o the_o church_n of_o laodicea_n 411._o see_v church_n religion_n luther_n 526._o luther_n and_o calvin_n testify_v against_o persecution_n persecute_v themselves_o thereby_o encourage_v papist_n 526_o 527._o lutheran_n their_o sedition_n against_o reform_a teacher_n and_o assault_v etc._n etc._n 292._o their_o principle_n of_o persecution_n etc._n etc._n 690._o they_o hold_v no_o salvation_n without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o scripture_n 692_o m._n macquare_n r._n m'_v most_o abusive_a rail_a against_o the_o quaker_n and_o their_o doctrine_n 880._o and_o his_o shameless_a flattery_n to_o j._n b._n ibid._n magistrate_n concern_v his_o power_n in-thing_n pure_o religious_a and_o that_o he_o have_v no_o authority_n over_o the_o conscience_n 515_o 530._o nor_o aught_o he_o to_o punish_v according_a to_o church-censure_n 517._o concern_v the_o present_a magistrate_n of_o the_o christian_a word_n 563_o 564._o magistracy_n and_o the_o office_n thereof_o 157_o 159_o 171._o be_v a_o ordinance_n of_o god_n 710._o its_o lawfulness_n and_o power_n 865._o he_o bear_v not_o the_o sword_n in_o vain_a 665._o not_o to_o punish_v for_o religious_a matter_n but_o evil_a in_o civil_a matter_n ibid._n priest_n call_v for_o the_o magistrate_n sword_n to_o defend_v their_o doctrine_n against_o the_o quaker_n 76_o they_o make_v he_o their_o executioner_n 667._o christ_n kingdom_n need_v not_o outward_a power_n to_o protect_v it_o 846._o the_o nature_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v extrinsic_a from_o the_o rule_n and_o government_n of_o state_n 517._o if_o magistrate_n have_v power_n to_o punish_v heretic_n than_o nero_n be_v no_o persecutor_n 521._o then_o force_v a_o conformity_n be_v not_o compel_v the_o conscience_n as_o j._n b._n assert_n 865._o see_v heresy_n mahomet_n prohibit_v all_o reason_n and_o discourse_n about_o religion_n 527._o he_o be_v a_o impostor_n 338._o majesty_n your_o majesty_n see_v title_n ‑_o excellent_a majesty_n 875_o maintenance_n minister_n maintenance_n 142._o must_v be_v voluntary_a not_o coercive_a ibid._n 143._o the_o gospel_n to_o be_v make_v without_o charge_n 168_o 434._o his_o necessity_n to_o be_v answer_v 432_o 661._o god_n send_v no_o man_n away_o fare_v upon_o his_o own_o charge_n 435._o the_o abuse_n priest_n maintenance_n bring_v 436._o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n no_o stint_v maintenance_n be_v seek_v by_o the_o minister_n ibid._n who_o hire_v a_o teacher_n may_v pay_v his_o stipend_n 438._o what_o kind_n of_o maintenance_n be_v deny_v 661_o 662._o what_o maintenance_n allow_v to_o minister_n in_o scripture_n 840._o malchus_n his_o ear_n cut_v off_o see_v title_n man_n see_v knowledge_n his_o spirit_n know_v the_o thing_n of_o a_o man_n and_o not_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n 275._o the_o carnal_a man_n esteem_v the_o gospel-truths_n as_o lie_v 276._o and_o in_o that_o state_n he_o can_v please_v god_n 282._o the_o new_a man_n and_o the_o old_a 294_o 593._o the_o natural_a man_n can_v discern_v spiritual_a thing_n as_o to_o the_o first_o adam_n he_o be_v fall_v and_o degenerate_a 294_o 308_o 310_o 317_o 318._o his_o thought_n of_o god_n and_o divine_a thing_n in_o the_o corrupt_a state_n be_v evil_a and_o unprofitable_a 310._o nothing_o of_o adam_n sin_n be_v impute_v to_o he_o until_o by_o evil-doing_a he_o commit_v his_o own_o 311_o 315_o 316._o in_o the_o corrupt_a state_n he_o have_v no_o will_n or_o light_n capable_a of_o itself_o to_o manifest_v spiritual_a thing_n 311_o 314_o 367._o he_o can_v when_o he_o will_v procure_v to_o himself_o tenderness_n of_o heart_n 389._o whatsoever_o he_o do_v while_o he_o do_v it_o not_o by_o in_o and_z through_o the_o power_n of_o god_n he_o be_v not_o approve_v of_o god_n 452_o 453._o how_o the_o inward_a man_n be_v nourish_v 495_o 497._o how_o his_o understanding_n can_v be_v force_v by_o suffering_n and_o how_o his_o understanding_n be_v change_v 521_o 522._o the_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v deceitful_a 301_o 312._o his_o imagination_n evil_a ibid._n the_o natural_a man_n discern_v not_o etc._n etc._n 313._o the_o fall_n of_o man_n do_v affect_v both_o soul_n and_o body_n 762._o how_o man_n mind_n be_v change_v 522_o manifestation_n see_v seed_n merchandise_n what_o it_o be_v to_o make_v merchandise_n with_o the_o scripture_n 426_o marriage_n the_o care_n take_v about_o they_o by_o the_o people_n call_v quaker_n 210_o 211._o martyr_n of_o protestant_n martyr_n 523_o 528_o j._n b_n condemn_v primitive_a martyr_n false_o as_o lead_v by_o a_o spirit_n of_o error_n 736._o mass_o 441_o 448_o 454_o 474._o ‑_o the_o popish_a mass_n and_o vesper_n 443._o see_v papist_n mathematician_n 293_o 294_o meat_n and_o drink_n the_o law_n be_v meat_n and_o drink_n not_o so_o the_o gospel_n 512._o the_o observe_v of_o meat_n drink_n wash_n to_o be_v consider_v in_o a_o threefold_a respect_n 586._o mechanic_n 431._o they_o contribute_v much_o to_o the_o reformation_n 432_o mediator_n see_v christ._n meditation_n the_o quaker_n be_v not_o against_o it_o 452_o meeting_n to_o have_v set_v meeting_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o proper_a time_n and_o season_n do_v not_o contradict_v the_o be_v lead_v immediate_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 204_o 235._o meeting_n to_o take_v care_n for_o the_o poor_a widow_n and_o orphan_n etc._n etc._n 206._o the_o necessity_n of_o meeting_n set_v time_n and_o place_n 442._o assembly_n of_o worship_n in_o public_a describe_v 444._o silent_a meeting_n 445._o a_o secret_a travel_n in_o silent_a meeting_n 446._o speak_v to_o edification_n in_o meeting_n 446._o the_o mocker_n in_o meeting_n ibid._n our_o work_n and_o worship_n in_o our_o meeting_n 447._o a_o sweet_a sound_n of_o thanksgiving_n and_o praise_n in_o our_o meeting_n 448._o set_a time_n and_o place_n and_o the_o use_v and_o